<SPAN name="startofbook"></SPAN>
<div class="fig"> <ANTIMG src="images/cover.jpg" style="width:100%;" alt="[Illustration]" /></div>
<h1>THE WALLET OF KAI LUNG</h1>
<h2 class="no-break">By Ernest Bramah</h2>
<hr />
<p class="letter">
“Ho, illustrious passers-by!” says Kai Lung as he spreads out his
embroidered mat under the mulberry-tree. “It is indeed unlikely that you
could condescend to stop and listen to the foolish words of such an
insignificant and altogether deformed person as myself. Nevertheless, if you
will but retard your elegant footsteps for a few moments, this exceedingly
unprepossessing individual will endeavour to entertain you.” This is a
collection of Kai Lung’s entertaining tales, told professionally in the
market places as he travelled about; told sometimes to occupy and divert the
minds of his enemies when they were intent on torturing him.</p>
<hr />
<h2>Contents</h2>
<table summary="" >
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0001">I. THE TRANSMUTATION OF LING</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0002">II. THE STORY OF YUNG CHANG</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0003">III. THE PROBATION OF SEN HENG</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0004">IV. THE EXPERIMENT OF THE MANDARIN CHAN HUNG</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0005">V. THE CONFESSION OF KAI LUNG</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0006">VI. THE VENGEANCE OF TUNG FEL</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0007">VII. THE CAREER OF THE CHARITABLE QUEN-KI-TONG</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0008">VIII. THE VISION OF YIN, THE SON OF YAT HUANG</SPAN></td>
</tr>
<tr>
<td> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0009">IX. THE ILL-REGULATED DESTINY OF KIN YEN, THE PICTURE-MAKER</SPAN></td>
</tr>
</table>
<hr />
<h2><SPAN name="link2HCH0001" id="link2HCH0001"></SPAN> I.<br/> THE TRANSMUTATION OF LING</h2>
<h3>CHAPTER I<br/> INTRODUCTION</h3>
<p>The sun had dipped behind the western mountains before Kai Lung, with twenty li
or more still between him and the city of Knei Yang, entered the camphor-laurel
forest which stretched almost to his destination. No person of consequence ever
made the journey unattended; but Kai Lung professed to have no fear, remarking
with extempore wisdom, when warned at the previous village, that a worthless
garment covered one with better protection than that afforded by an army of
bowmen. Nevertheless, when within the gloomy aisles, Kai Lung more than once
wished himself back at the village, or safely behind the mud walls of Knei
Yang; and, making many vows concerning the amount of prayer-paper which he
would assuredly burn when he was actually through the gates, he stepped out
more quickly, until suddenly, at a turn in the glade, he stopped altogether,
while the watchful expression into which he had unguardedly dropped at once
changed into a mask of impassiveness and extreme unconcern. From behind the
next tree projected a long straight rod, not unlike a slender bamboo at a
distance, but, to Kai Lung’s all-seeing eye, in reality the barrel of a
matchlock, which would come into line with his breast if he took another step.
Being a prudent man, more accustomed to guile and subservience to destiny than
to force, he therefore waited, spreading out his hands in proof of his peaceful
acquiescence, and smiling cheerfully until it should please the owner of the
weapon to step forth. This the unseen did a moment later, still keeping his gun
in an easy and convenient attitude, revealing a stout body and a scarred face,
which in conjunction made it plain to Kai Lung that he was in the power of Lin
Yi, a noted brigand of whom he had heard much in the villages.</p>
<p>“O illustrious person,” said Kai Lung very earnestly, “this
is evidently an unfortunate mistake. Doubtless you were expecting some exalted
Mandarin to come and render you homage, and were preparing to overwhelm him
with gratified confusion by escorting him yourself to your well-appointed
abode. Indeed, I passed such a one on the road, very richly apparelled, who
inquired of me the way to the mansion of the dignified and upright Lin Yi. By
this time he is perhaps two or three li towards the east.”</p>
<p>“However distinguished a Mandarin may be, it is fitting that I should
first attend to one whose manners and accomplishments betray him to be of the
Royal House,” replied Lin Yi, with extreme affability. “Precede me,
therefore, to my mean and uninviting hovel, while I gain more honour than I can
reasonably bear by following closely in your elegant footsteps, and guarding
your Imperial person with this inadequate but heavily-loaded weapon.”</p>
<p>Seeing no chance of immediate escape, Kai Lung led the way, instructed by the
brigand, along a very difficult and bewildering path, until they reached a cave
hidden among the crags. Here Lin Yi called out some words in the Miaotze
tongue, whereupon a follower appeared, and opened a gate in the stockade of
prickly mimosa which guarded the mouth of the den. Within the enclosure a fire
burned, and food was being prepared. At a word from the chief, the unfortunate
Kai Lung found his hands seized and tied behind his back, while a second later
a rough hemp rope was fixed round his neck, and the other end tied to an
overhanging tree.</p>
<p>Lin Yi smiled pleasantly and critically upon these preparations, and when they
were complete dismissed his follower.</p>
<p>“Now we can converse at our ease and without restraint,” he
remarked to Kai Lung. “It will be a distinguished privilege for a person
occupying the important public position which you undoubtedly do; for myself,
my instincts are so degraded and low-minded that nothing gives me more
gratification than to dispense with ceremony.”</p>
<p>To this Kai Lung made no reply, chiefly because at that moment the wind swayed
the tree, and compelled him to stand on his toes in order to escape
suffocation.</p>
<p>“It would be useless to try to conceal from a person of your inspired
intelligence that I am indeed Lin Yi,” continued the robber. “It is
a dignified position to occupy, and one for which I am quite incompetent. In
the sixth month of the third year ago, it chanced that this unworthy person, at
that time engaged in commercial affairs at Knei Yang, became inextricably
immersed in the insidious delights of quail-fighting. Having been entrusted
with a large number of taels with which to purchase elephants’ teeth, it
suddenly occurred to him that if he doubled the number of taels by staking them
upon an exceedingly powerful and agile quail, he would be able to purchase
twice the number of teeth, and so benefit his patron to a large extent. This
matter was clearly forced upon his notice by a dream, in which he perceived one
whom he then understood to be the benevolent spirit of an ancestor in the act
of stroking a particular quail, upon whose chances he accordingly placed all he
possessed. Doubtless evil spirits had been employed in the matter; for, to this
person’s great astonishment, the quail in question failed in a very
discreditable manner at the encounter. Unfortunately, this person had risked
not only the money which had been entrusted to him, but all that he had himself
become possessed of by some years of honourable toil and assiduous courtesy as
a professional witness in law cases. Not doubting that his patron would see
that he was himself greatly to blame in confiding so large a sum of money to a
comparatively young man of whom he knew little, this person placed the matter
before him, at the same time showing him that he would suffer in the eyes of
the virtuous if he did not restore this person’s savings, which but for
the presence of the larger sum, and a generous desire to benefit his patron, he
would never have risked in so uncertain a venture as that of quail-fighting.
Although the facts were laid in the form of a dignified request instead of a
demand by legal means, and the reasoning carefully drawn up in columns of fine
parchment by a very illustrious writer, the reply which this person received
showed him plainly that a wrong view had been taken of the matter, and that the
time had arrived when it became necessary for him to make a suitable rejoinder
by leaving the city without delay.”</p>
<p>“It was a high-minded and disinterested course to take,” said Kai
Lung with great conviction, as Lin Yi paused. “Without doubt evil will
shortly overtake the avaricious-souled person at Knei Yang.”</p>
<p>“It has already done so,” replied Lin Yi. “While passing
through this forest in the season of Many White Vapours, the spirits of his bad
deeds appeared to him in misleading and symmetrical shapes, and drew him out of
the path and away from his bowmen. After suffering many torments, he found his
way here, where, in spite of our continual care, he perished miserably and in
great bodily pain.... But I cannot conceal from myself, in spite of your
distinguished politeness, that I am becoming intolerably tiresome with my
commonplace talk.”</p>
<p>“On the contrary,” replied Kai Lung, “while listening to your
voice I seemed to hear the beating of many gongs of the finest and most
polished brass. I floated in the Middle Air, and for the time I even became
unconscious of the fact that this honourable appendage, though fashioned, as I
perceive, out of the most delicate silk, makes it exceedingly difficult for me
to breathe.”</p>
<p>“Such a thing cannot be permitted,” exclaimed Lin Yi, with some
indignation, as with his own hands he slackened the rope and, taking it from
Kai Lung’s neck, fastened it around his ankle. “Now, in return for
my uninviting confidences, shall not my senses be gladdened by a recital of the
titles and honours borne by your distinguished family? Doubtless, at this
moment many Mandarins of the highest degree are anxiously awaiting your arrival
at Knei Yang, perhaps passing the time by outdoing one another in protesting
the number of taels each would give rather than permit you to be tormented by
fire-brands, or even to lose a single ear.”</p>
<p>“Alas!” replied Kai Lung, “never was there a truer proverb
than that which says, ‘It is a mark of insincerity of purpose to spend
one’s time in looking for the sacred Emperor in the low-class
tea-shops.’ Do Mandarins or the friends of Mandarins travel in mean
garments and unattended? Indeed, the person who is now before you is none other
than the outcast Kai Lung, the story-teller, one of degraded habits and no very
distinguished or reputable ancestors. His friends are few, and mostly of the
criminal class; his wealth is not more than some six or eight cash, concealed
in his left sandal; and his entire stock-in-trade consists of a few unendurable
and badly told stories, to which, however, it is his presumptuous intention
shortly to add a dignified narrative of the high-born Lin Yi, setting out his
domestic virtues and the honour which he has reflected upon his house, his
valour in war, the destruction of his enemies, and, above all, his great
benevolence and the protection which he extends to the poor and those engaged
in the distinguished arts.”</p>
<p>“The absence of friends is unfortunate,” said Lin Yi thoughtfully,
after he had possessed himself of the coins indicated by Kai Lung, and also of
a much larger amount concealed elsewhere among the story-teller’s
clothing. “My followers are mostly outlawed Miaotze, who have been driven
from their own tribes in Yun Nan for man-eating and disregarding the sacred
laws of hospitality. They are somewhat rapacious, and in this way it has become
a custom that they should have as their own, for the purpose of exchanging for
money, persons such as yourself, whose insatiable curiosity has led them to
this place.”</p>
<p>“The wise and all-knowing Emperor Fohy instituted three degrees of
attainment: Being poor, to obtain justice; being rich, to escape flattery; and
being human, to avoid the passions,” replied Kai Lung. “To these
the practical and enlightened Kang added yet another, the greatest: Being lean,
to yield fatness.”</p>
<p>“In such cases,” observed the brigand, “the Miaotze keep an
honoured and very venerable rite, which chiefly consists in suspending the
offender by a pigtail from a low tree, and placing burning twigs of hemp-palm
between his toes. To this person it seems a foolish and meaningless habit; but
it would not be well to interfere with their religious observances, however
trivial they may appear.”</p>
<p>“Such a course must inevitably end in great loss,” suggested Kai
Lung; “for undoubtedly there are many poor yet honourable persons who
would leave with them a bond for a large number of taels and save the money
with which to redeem it, rather than take part in a ceremony which is not
according to one’s own Book of Rites.”</p>
<p>“They have already suffered in that way on one or two occasions,”
replied Lin Yi; “so that such a proposal, no matter how nobly intended,
would not gladden their faces. Yet they are simple and docile persons, and
would, without doubt, be moved to any feeling you should desire by the recital
of one of your illustrious stories.”</p>
<p>“An intelligent and discriminating assemblage is more to a story-teller
than much reward of cash from hands that conceal open mouths,” replied
Kai Lung with great feeling. “Nothing would confer more pleasurable
agitation upon this unworthy person than an opportunity of narrating his entire
stock to them. If also the accomplished Lin Yi would bestow renown upon the
occasion by his presence, no omen of good would be wanting.”</p>
<p>“The pleasures of the city lie far behind me,” said Lin Yi, after
some thought, “and I would cheerfully submit myself to an intellectual
accomplishment such as you are undoubtedly capable of. But as we have necessity
to leave this spot before the hour when the oak-leaves change into night-moths,
one of your amiable stories will be the utmost we can strengthen our intellects
with. Select which you will. In the meantime, food will be brought to refresh
you after your benevolent exertions in conversing with a person of my vapid
understanding. When you have partaken, or thrown it away as utterly
unendurable, the time will have arrived, and this person, together with all his
accomplices, will put themselves in a position to be subjected to all the most
dignified emotions.”</p>
<h3>CHAPTER II</h3>
<p>“The story which I have selected for this gratifying occasion,”
said Kai Lung, when, an hour or so later, still pinioned, but released from the
halter, he sat surrounded by the brigands, “is entitled ‘Good and
Evil,’ and it is concerned with the adventures of one Ling, who bore the
honourable name of Ho. The first, and indeed the greater, part of the
narrative, as related by the venerable and accomplished writer of history
Chow-Tan, is taken up by showing how Ling was assuredly descended from an
enlightened Emperor of the race of Tsin; but as the no less omniscient
Ta-lin-hi proves beyond doubt that the person in question was in no way
connected with any but a line of hereditary ape-worshippers, who entered China
from an unknown country many centuries ago, it would ill become this illiterate
person to express an opinion on either side, and he will in consequence omit
the first seventeen books of the story, and only deal with the three which
refer to the illustrious Ling himself.”</p>
<p class="center">
THE STORY OF LING</p>
<p class="center">
Narrated by Kai Lung when a prisoner in the camp of Lin Yi.</p>
<p>Ling was the youngest of three sons, and from his youth upwards proved to be of
a mild and studious disposition. Most of his time was spent in reading the
sacred books, and at an early age he found the worship of apes to be repulsive
to his gentle nature, and resolved to break through the venerable traditions of
his family by devoting his time to literary pursuits, and presenting himself
for the public examinations at Canton. In this his resolution was strengthened
by a rumour that an army of bowmen was shortly to be raised from the Province
in which he lived, so that if he remained he would inevitably be forced into an
occupation which was even more distasteful to him than the one he was leaving.</p>
<p>Having arrived at Canton, Ling’s first care was to obtain particulars of
the examinations, which he clearly perceived, from the unusual activity
displayed on all sides, to be near at hand. On inquiring from passers-by, he
received very conflicting information; for the persons to whom he spoke were
themselves entered for the competition, and therefore naturally misled him in
order to increase their own chances of success. Perceiving this, Ling
determined to apply at once, although the light was past, to a Mandarin who was
concerned in the examinations, lest by delay he should lose his chance for the
year.</p>
<p>“It is an unfortunate event that so distinguished a person should have
selected this day and hour on which to overwhelm us with his affable
politeness!” exclaimed the porter at the gate of the Yamen, when Ling had
explained his reason for going. “On such a day, in the reign of the
virtuous Emperor Hoo Chow, a very benevolent and unassuming ancestor of my good
lord the Mandarin was destroyed by treachery, and ever since his family has
observed the occasion by fasting and no music. This person would certainly be
punished with death if he entered the inner room from any cause.”</p>
<p>At these words, Ling, who had been simply brought up, and chiefly in the
society of apes, was going away with many expressions of self-reproach at
selecting such a time, when the gate-keeper called him back.</p>
<p>“I am overwhelmed with confusion at the position in which I find
myself,” he remarked, after he had examined his mind for a short time.
“I may meet with an ungraceful and objectionable death if I carry out
your estimable instructions, but I shall certainly merit and receive a similar
fate if I permit so renowned and versatile a person to leave without a fitting
reception. In such matters a person can only trust to the intervention of good
spirits; if, therefore, you will permit this unworthy individual to wear, while
making the venture, the ring which he perceives upon your finger, and which he
recognizes as a very powerful charm against evil, misunderstandings, and
extortion, he will go without fear.”</p>
<p>Overjoyed at the amiable porter’s efforts on his behalf, Ling did as he
was desired, and the other retired. Presently the door of the Yamen was opened
by an attendant of the house, and Ling bidden to enter. He was covered with
astonishment to find that this person was entirely unacquainted with his name
or purpose.</p>
<p>“Alas!” said the attendant, when Ling had explained his object,
“well said the renowned and inspired Ting Fo, ‘When struck by a
thunderbolt it is unnecessary to consult the Book of Dates as to the precise
meaning of the omen.’ At this moment my noble-minded master is engaged in
conversation with all the most honourable and refined persons in Canton, while
singers and dancers of a very expert and nimble order have been sent for. The
entertainment will undoubtedly last far into the night, and to present myself
even with the excuse of your graceful and delicate inquiry would certainly
result in very objectionable consequences to this person.”</p>
<p>“It is indeed a day of unprepossessing circumstances,” replied
Ling, and after many honourable remarks concerning his own intellect and
appearance, and those of the person to whom he was speaking, he had turned to
leave when the other continued:</p>
<p>“Ever since your dignified presence illumined this very ordinary chamber,
this person has been endeavouring to bring to his mind an incident which
occurred to him last night while he slept. Now it has come back to him with a
diamond clearness, and he is satisfied that it was as follows: While he floated
in the Middle Air a benevolent spirit in the form of an elderly and toothless
vampire appeared, leading by the hand a young man, of elegant personality.
Smiling encouragingly upon this person, the spirit said, ‘O Fou,
recipient of many favours from Mandarins and of innumerable taels from
gratified persons whom you have obliged, I am, even at this moment, guiding
this exceptional young man towards your presence; when he arrives do not
hesitate, but do as he desires, no matter how great the danger seems or how
inadequately you may appear to be rewarded on earth.’ The vision then
melted, but I now clearly perceive that with the exception of the embroidered
cloak which you wear, you are the person thus indicated to me. Remove your
cloak, therefore, in order to give the amiable spirit no opportunity of denying
the fact, and I will advance your wishes; for, as the Book of Verses indicates,
‘The person who patiently awaits a sign from the clouds for many years,
and yet fails to notice the earthquake at his feet, is devoid of
intellect.’”</p>
<p>Convinced that he was assuredly under the especial protection of the Deities,
and that the end of his search was in view, Ling gave his rich cloak to the
attendant, and was immediately shown into another room, where he was left
alone.</p>
<p>After a considerable space of time the door opened and there entered a person
whom Ling at first supposed to be the Mandarin. Indeed, he was addressing him
by his titles when the other interrupted him. “Do not distress your
incomparable mind by searching for honourable names to apply to so inferior a
person as myself,” he said agreeably. “The mistake is,
nevertheless, very natural; for, however miraculous it may appear, this
unseemly individual, who is in reality merely a writer of spoken words, is
admitted to be exceedingly like the dignified Mandarin himself, though somewhat
stouter, clad in better garments, and, it is said, less obtuse of intellect.
This last matter he very much doubts, for he now finds himself unable to
recognize by name one who is undoubtedly entitled to wear the Royal
Yellow.”</p>
<p>With this encouragement Ling once more explained his position, narrating the
events which had enabled him to reach the second chamber of the Yamen. When he
had finished the secretary was overpowered with a high-minded indignation.</p>
<p>“Assuredly those depraved and rapacious persons who have both misled and
robbed you shall suffer bow-stringing when the whole matter is brought to
light,” he exclaimed. “The noble Mandarin neither fasts nor
receives guests, for, indeed, he has slept since the sun went down. This person
would unhesitatingly break his slumber for so commendable a purpose were it not
for a circumstance of intolerable unavoidableness. It must not even be told in
a low breath beyond the walls of the Yamen, but my benevolent and high-born
lord is in reality a person of very miserly instinct, and nothing will call him
from his natural sleep but the sound of taels shaken beside his bed. In an
unexpected manner it comes about that this person is quite unsupplied with
anything but thin printed papers of a thousand taels each, and these are quite
useless for the purpose.”</p>
<p>“It is unendurable that so obliging a person should be put to such
inconvenience on behalf of one who will certainly become a public
laughing-stock at the examinations,” said Ling, with deep feeling; and
taking from a concealed spot in his garments a few taels, he placed them before
the secretary for the use he had indicated.</p>
<p>Ling was again left alone for upwards of two strokes of the gong, and was on
the point of sleep when the secretary returned with an expression of dignified
satisfaction upon his countenance. Concluding that he had been successful in
the manner of awakening the Mandarin, Ling was opening his mouth for a polite
speech, which should contain a delicate allusion to the taels, when the
secretary warned him, by affecting a sudden look of terror, that silence was
exceedingly desirable, and at the same time opened another door and indicated
to Ling that he should pass through.</p>
<p>In the next room Ling was overjoyed to find himself in the presence of the
Mandarin, who received him graciously, and paid many estimable compliments to
the name he bore and the country from which he came. When at length Ling tore
himself from this enchanting conversation, and explained the reason of his
presence, the Mandarin at once became a prey to the whitest and most melancholy
emotions, even plucking two hairs from his pigtail to prove the extent and
conscientiousness of his grief.</p>
<p>“Behold,” he cried at length, “I am resolved that the
extortionate and many-handed persons at Peking who have control of the
examination rites and customs shall no longer grow round-bodied without remark.
This person will unhesitatingly proclaim the true facts of the case without
regarding the danger that the versatile Chancellor or even the sublime Emperor
himself may, while he speaks, be concealed in some part of this unassuming room
to hear his words; for, as it is wisely said, ‘When marked out by
destiny, a person will assuredly be drowned, even though he passes the whole of
his existence among the highest branches of a date tree.’”</p>
<p>“I am overwhelmed that I should be the cause of such an engaging display
of polished agitation,” said Ling, as the Mandarin paused. “If it
would make your own stomach less heavy, this person will willingly follow your
estimable example, either with or without knowing the reason.”</p>
<p>“The matter is altogether on your account, O most unobtrusive young
man,” replied the Mandarin, when a voice without passion was restored to
him. “It tears me internally with hooks to reflect that you, whose
refined ancestors I might reasonably have known had I passed my youth in
another Province, should be victim to the cupidity of the ones in authority at
Peking. A very short time before you arrived there came a messenger in haste
from those persons, clearly indicating that a legal toll of sixteen taels was
to be made on each printed paper setting forth the time and manner of the
examinations, although, as you may see, the paper is undoubtedly marked,
‘Persons are given notice that they are defrauded of any sum which they
may be induced to exchange for this matter.’ Furthermore, there is a
legal toll of nine taels on all persons who have previously been
examined—”</p>
<p>“I am happily escaped from that,” exclaimed Ling with some
satisfaction as the Mandarin paused.</p>
<p>“—and twelve taels on all who present themselves for the first
time. This is to be delivered over when the paper is purchased, so that you, by
reason of this unworthy proceeding at Peking, are required to forward to that
place, through this person, no less than thirty-two taels.”</p>
<p>“It is a circumstance of considerable regret,” replied Ling;
“for had I only reached Canton a day earlier, I should, it appears, have
avoided this evil.”</p>
<p>“Undoubtedly it would have been so,” replied the Mandarin, who had
become engrossed in exalted meditation. “However,” he continued a
moment later, as he bowed to Ling with an accomplished smile, “it would
certainly be a more pleasant thought for a person of your refined intelligence
that had you delayed until to-morrow the insatiable persons at Peking might be
demanding twice the amount.”</p>
<p>Pondering the deep wisdom of this remark, Ling took his departure; but in spite
of the most assiduous watchfulness he was unable to discern any of the three
obliging persons to whose efforts his success had been due.</p>
<h3>CHAPTER III</h3>
<p>It was very late when Ling again reached the small room which he had selected
as soon as he reached Canton, but without waiting for food or sleep he made
himself fully acquainted with the times of the forthcoming examinations and the
details of the circumstances connected with them. With much satisfaction he
found that he had still a week in which to revive his intellect on the most
difficult subjects. Having become relieved on these points, Ling retired for a
few hours’ sleep, but rose again very early, and gave the whole day with
great steadfastness to contemplation of the sacred classics Y-King, with the
exception of a short period spent in purchasing ink, brushes and
writing-leaves. The following day, having become mentally depressed through
witnessing unaccountable hordes of candidates thronging the streets of Canton,
Ling put aside his books, and passed the time in visiting all the most
celebrated tombs in the neighbourhood of the city. Lightened in mind by this
charitable and agreeable occupation, he returned to his studies with a fixed
resolution, nor did he again falter in his purpose. On the evening of the
examination, when he was sitting alone, reading by the aid of a single light,
as his custom was, a person arrived to see him, at the same time manifesting a
considerable appearance of secrecy and reserve. Inwardly sighing at the
interruption, Ling nevertheless received him with distinguished consideration
and respect, setting tea before him, and performing towards it many honourable
actions with his own hands. Not until some hours had sped in conversation
relating to the health of the Emperor, the unexpected appearance of a fiery
dragon outside the city, and the insupportable price of opium, did the visitor
allude to the object of his presence.</p>
<p>“It has been observed,” he remarked, “that the accomplished
Ling, who aspires to a satisfactory rank at the examinations, has never before
made the attempt. Doubtless in this case a preternatural wisdom will avail
much, and its fortunate possessor will not go unrewarded. Yet it is as precious
stones among ashes for one to triumph in such circumstances.”</p>
<p>“The fact is known to this person,” replied Ling sadly, “and
the thought of the years he may have to wait before he shall have passed even
the first degree weighs down his soul with bitterness from time to time.”</p>
<p>“It is no infrequent thing for men of accomplished perseverance, but
merely ordinary intellects, to grow venerable within the four walls of the
examination cell,” continued the other. “Some, again, become
afflicted with various malignant evils, while not a few, chiefly those who are
presenting themselves for the first time, are so overcome on perceiving the
examination paper, and understanding the inadequate nature of their own
accomplishments, that they become an easy prey to the malicious spirits which
are ever on the watch in those places; and, after covering their leaves with
unpresentable remarks and drawings of men and women of distinguished rank, have
at length to be forcibly carried away by the attendants and secured with heavy
chains.”</p>
<p>“Such things undoubtedly exist,” agreed Ling; “yet by a due
regard paid to spirits, both good and bad, a proper esteem for one’s
ancestors, and a sufficiency of charms about the head and body, it is possible
to be closeted with all manner of demons and yet to suffer no evil.”</p>
<p>“It is undoubtedly possible to do so, according to the Immortal
Principles,” admitted the stranger; “but it is not an undertaking
in which a refined person would take intelligent pleasure; as the proverb says,
‘He is a wise and enlightened suppliant who seeks to discover an
honourable Mandarin, but he is a fool who cries out, “I have found
one.”’ However, it is obvious that the reason of my visit is
understood, and that your distinguished confidence in yourself is merely a
graceful endeavour to obtain my services for a less amount of taels than I
should otherwise have demanded. For half the usual sum, therefore, this person
will take your place in the examination cell, and enable your versatile name to
appear in the winning lists, while you pass your moments in irreproachable
pleasures elsewhere.”</p>
<p>Such a course had never presented itself to Ling. As the person who narrates
this story has already marked, he had passed his life beyond the influence of
the ways and manners of towns, and at the same time he had naturally been
endowed with an unobtrusive highmindedness. It appeared to him, in consequence,
that by accepting this engaging offer he would be placing those who were
competing with him at a disadvantage. This person clearly sees that it is a
difficult matter for him to explain how this could be, as Ling would
undoubtedly reward the services of the one who took his place, nor would the
number of the competitors be in any way increased; yet in such a way the thing
took shape before his eyes. Knowing, however, that few persons would be able to
understand this action, and being desirous of not injuring the estimable
emotions of the obliging person who had come to him, Ling made a number of
polished excuses in declining, hiding the true reason within himself. In this
way he earned the powerful malignity of the person in question, who would not
depart until he had effected a number of very disagreeable prophecies connected
with unpropitious omens and internal torments, all of which undoubtedly had a
great influence on Ling’s life beyond that time.</p>
<p>Each day of the examination found Ling alternately elated or depressed,
according to the length and style of the essay which he had written while
enclosed in his solitary examination cell. The trials each lasted a complete
day, and long before the fifteen days which composed the full examination were
passed, Ling found himself half regretting that he had not accepted his
visitor’s offer, or even reviling the day on which he had abandoned the
hereditary calling of his ancestors. However, when, after all was over, he came
to deliberate with himself on his chances of attaining a degree, he could not
disguise from his own mind that he had well-formed hopes; he was not conscious
of any undignified errors, and, in reply to several questions, he had been able
to introduce curious knowledge which he possessed by means of his exceptional
circumstances—knowledge which it was unlikely that any other candidate
would have been able to make himself master of.</p>
<p>At length the day arrived on which the results were to be made public; and
Ling, together with all the other competitors and many distinguished persons,
attended at the great Hall of Intellectual Coloured Lights to hear the reading
of the lists. Eight thousand candidates had been examined, and from this number
less than two hundred were to be selected for appointments. Amid a most
distinguished silence the winning names were read out. Waves of most
undignified but inevitable emotion passed over those assembled as the list
neared its end, and the chances of success became less at each spoken word; and
then, finding that his was not among them, together with the greater part of
those present, he became a prey to very inelegant thoughts, which were not
lessened by the refined cries of triumph of the successful persons. Among this
confusion the one who had read the lists was observed to be endeavouring to
make his voice known, whereupon, in the expectation that he had omitted a name,
the tumult was quickly subdued by those who again had pleasurable visions.</p>
<p>“There was among the candidates one of the name of Ling,” said he,
when no-noise had been obtained. “The written leaves produced by this
person are of a most versatile and conflicting order, so that, indeed, the
accomplished examiners themselves are unable to decide whether they are very
good or very bad. In this matter, therefore, it is clearly impossible to place
the expert and inimitable Ling among the foremost, as his very uncertain
success may have been brought about with the assistance of evil spirits; nor
would it be safe to pass over his efforts without reward, as he may be under
the protection of powerful but exceedingly ill-advised deities. The estimable
Ling is told to appear again at this place after the gong has been struck three
times, when the matter will have been looked at from all round.”</p>
<p>At this announcement there arose another great tumult, several crying out that
assuredly their written leaves were either very good or very bad; but no
further proclamation was made, and very soon the hall was cleared by force.</p>
<p>At the time stated Ling again presented himself at the Hall, and was honourably
received.</p>
<p>“The unusual circumstances of the matter have already been put
forth,” said an elderly Mandarin of engaging appearance, “so that
nothing remains to be made known except the end of our despicable efforts to
come to an agreeable conclusion. In this we have been made successful, and now
desire to notify the result. A very desirable and not unremunerative office,
rarely bestowed in this manner, is lately vacant, and taking into our minds the
circumstances of the event, and the fact that Ling comes from a Province very
esteemed for the warlike instincts of its inhabitants, we have decided to
appoint him commander of the valiant and blood-thirsty band of archers now
stationed at Si-chow, in the Province of Hu-Nan. We have spoken. Let three guns
go off in honour of the noble and invincible Ling, now and henceforth a
commander in the ever-victorious Army of the Sublime Emperor, brother of the
Sun and Moon, and Upholder of the Four Corners of the World.”</p>
<h3>CHAPTER IV</h3>
<p>Many hours passed before Ling, now more downcast in mind than the most
unsuccessful student in Canton, returned to his room and sought his couch of
dried rushes. All his efforts to have his distinguished appointment set aside
had been without avail, and he had been ordered to reach Si-chow within a week.
As he passed through the streets, elegant processions in honour of the winners
met him at every corner, and drove him into the outskirts for the object of
quietness. There he remained until the beating of paper drums and the sound of
exulting voices could be heard no more; but even when he returned lanterns
shone in many dwellings, for two hundred persons were composing verses, setting
forth their renown and undoubted accomplishments, ready to affix to their doors
and send to friends on the next day. Not giving any portion of his mind to this
desirable act of behaviour, Ling flung himself upon the floor, and, finding
sleep unattainable, plunged himself into profound meditation of a very
uninviting order. “Without doubt,” he exclaimed, “evil can
only arise from evil, and as this person has always endeavoured to lead a life
in which his devotions have been equally divided between the sacred Emperor,
his illustrious parents, and his venerable ancestors, the fault cannot lie with
him. Of the excellence of his parents he has full knowledge; regarding the
Emperor, it might not be safe to conjecture. It is therefore probable that some
of his ancestors were persons of abandoned manner and inelegant habits, to
worship whom results in evil rather than good. Otherwise, how could it be that
one whose chief delight lies in the passive contemplation of the Four Books and
the Five Classics, should be selected by destiny to fill a position calling for
great personal courage and an aggressive nature? Assuredly it can only end in a
mean and insignificant death, perhaps not even followed by burial.”</p>
<p>In this manner of thought he fell asleep, and after certain very base and
impressive dreams, from which good omens were altogether absent, he awoke, and
rose to begin his preparations for leaving the city. After two days spent
chiefly in obtaining certain safeguards against treachery and the bullets of
foemen, purchasing opium and other gifts with which to propitiate the soldiers
under his charge, and in consulting well-disposed witches and readers of the
future, he set out, and by travelling in extreme discomfort, reached Si-chow
within five days. During his journey he learned that the entire Province was
engaged in secret rebellion, several towns, indeed, having declared against the
Imperial army without reserve. Those persons to whom Ling spoke described the
rebels, with respectful admiration, as fierce and unnaturally skilful in all
methods of fighting, revengeful and merciless towards their enemies, very
numerous and above the ordinary height of human beings, and endowed with
qualities which made their skin capable of turning aside every kind of weapon.
Furthermore, he was assured that a large band of the most abandoned and best
trained was at that moment in the immediate neighbourhood of Si-chow.</p>
<p>Ling was not destined long to remain in any doubt concerning the truth of these
matters, for as he made his way through a dark cypress wood, a few li from the
houses of Si-chow, the sounds of a confused outcry reached his ears, and on
stepping aside to a hidden glade some distance from the path, he beheld a young
and elegant maiden of incomparable beauty being carried away by two persons of
most repulsive and undignified appearance, whose dress and manner clearly
betrayed them to be rebels of the lowest and worst-paid type. At this sight
Ling became possessed of feelings of a savage yet agreeable order, which until
that time he had not conjectured to have any place within his mind, and without
even pausing to consider whether the planets were in favourable positions for
the enterprise to be undertaken at that time, he drew his sword, and ran
forward with loud cries. Unsettled in their intentions at this unexpected
action, the two persons turned and advanced upon Ling with whirling daggers,
discussing among themselves whether it would be better to kill him at the first
blow or to take him alive, and, when the day had become sufficiently cool for
the full enjoyment of the spectacle, submit him to various objectionable
tortures of so degraded a nature that they were rarely used in the army of the
Emperor except upon the persons of barbarians. Observing that the maiden was
not bound, Ling cried out to her to escape and seek protection within the town,
adding, with a magnanimous absence of vanity:</p>
<p>“Should this person chance to fall, the repose which the presence of so
lovely and graceful a being would undoubtedly bring to his departing spirit
would be out-balanced by the unendurable thought that his commonplace efforts
had not been sufficient to save her from the two evilly-disposed individuals
who are, as he perceives, at this moment, neglecting no means within their
power to accomplish his destruction.” Accepting the discernment of these
words, the maiden fled, first bestowing a look upon Ling which clearly
indicated an honourable regard for himself, a high-minded desire that the
affair might end profitably on his account, and an amiable hope that they
should meet again, when these subjects could be expressed more clearly between
them.</p>
<p>In the meantime Ling had become at a disadvantage, for the time occupied in
speaking and in making the necessary number of bows in reply to her entrancing
glance had given the other persons an opportunity of arranging their charms and
sacred written sentences to greater advantage, and of occupying the most
favourable ground for the encounter. Nevertheless, so great was the force of
the new emotion which had entered into Ling’s nature that, without
waiting to consider the dangers or the best method of attack, he rushed upon
them, waving his sword with such force that he appeared as though surrounded by
a circle of very brilliant fire. In this way he reached the rebels, who both
fell unexpectedly at one blow, they, indeed, being under the impression that
the encounter had not commenced in reality, and that Ling was merely menacing
them in order to inspire their minds with terror and raise his own spirits.
However much he regretted this act of the incident which he had been compelled
to take, Ling could not avoid being filled with intellectual joy at finding
that his own charms and omens were more distinguished than those possessed by
the rebels, none of whom, as he now plainly understood, he need fear.</p>
<p>Examining these things within his mind, and reflecting on the events of the
past few days, by which he had been thrown into a class of circumstances
greatly differing from anything which he had ever sought, Ling continued his
journey, and soon found himself before the southern gate of Si-chow. Entering
the town, he at once formed the resolution of going before the Mandarin for
Warlike Deeds and Arrangements, so that he might present, without delay, the
papers and seals which he had brought with him from Canton.</p>
<p>“The noble Mandarin Li Keen?” replied the first person to whom Ling
addressed himself. “It would indeed be a difficult and hazardous
conjecture to make concerning his sacred person. By chance he is in the
strongest and best-concealed cellar in Si-chow, unless the sumptuous
attractions of the deepest dry well have induced him to make a short
journey”; and, with a look of great unfriendliness at Ling’s dress
and weapons, this person passed on.</p>
<p>“Doubtless he is fighting single-handed against the armed men by whom the
place is surrounded,” said another; “or perhaps he is constructing
an underground road from the Yamen to Peking, so that we may all escape when
the town is taken. All that can be said with certainty is that the Heaven-sent
and valorous Mandarin has not been seen outside the walls of his well-fortified
residence since the trouble arose; but, as you carry a sword of conspicuous
excellence, you will doubtless be welcome.”</p>
<p>Upon making a third attempt Ling was more successful, for he inquired of an
aged woman, who had neither a reputation for keen and polished sentences to
maintain, nor any interest in the acts of the Mandarin or of the rebels. From
her he learned how to reach the Yamen, and accordingly turned his footsteps in
that direction. When at length he arrived at the gate, Ling desired his tablets
to be carried to the Mandarin with many expressions of an impressive and
engaging nature, nor did he neglect to reward the porter. It was therefore with
the expression of a misunderstanding mind that he received a reply setting
forth that Li Keen was unable to receive him. In great doubt he prevailed upon
the porter, by means of a still larger reward, again to carry in his message,
and on this occasion an answer in this detail was placed before him.</p>
<p>“Li Keen,” he was informed, “is indeed awaiting the arrival
of one Ling, a noble and valiant Commander of Bowmen. He is given to
understand, it is true, that a certain person claiming the same honoured name
is standing in somewhat undignified attitudes at the gate, but he is unable in
any way to make these two individuals meet within his intellect. He would
further remind all persons that the refined observances laid down by the wise
and exalted Board of Rites and Ceremonies have a marked and irreproachable
significance when the country is in a state of disorder, the town surrounded by
rebels, and every breathing-space of time of more than ordinary value.”</p>
<p>Overpowered with becoming shame at having been connected with so unseemly a
breach of civility, for which his great haste had in reality been accountable,
Ling hastened back into the town, and spent many hours endeavouring to obtain a
chair of the requisite colour in which to visit the Mandarin. In this he was
unsuccessful, until it was at length suggested to him that an ordinary chair,
such as stood for hire in the streets of Si-chow, would be acceptable if
covered with blue paper. Still in some doubt as to what the nature of his
reception would be, Ling had no choice but to take this course, and accordingly
he again reached the Yamen in such a manner, carried by two persons whom he had
obtained for the purpose. While yet hardly at the residence a salute was
suddenly fired; all the gates and doors were, without delay, thrown open with
embarrassing and hospitable profusion, and the Mandarin himself passed out, and
would have assisted Ling to step down from his chair had not that person,
clearly perceiving that such a course would be too great an honour, evaded him
by an unobtrusive display of versatile dexterity. So numerous and profound were
the graceful remarks which each made concerning the habits and accomplishments
of the other that more than the space of an hour was passed in traversing the
small enclosed ground which led up to the principal door of the Yamen. There an
almost greater time was agreeably spent, both Ling and the Mandarin having
determined that the other should enter first. Undoubtedly Ling, who was the
more powerful of the two, would have conferred this courteous distinction upon
Li Keen had not that person summoned to his side certain attendants who
succeeded in frustrating Ling in his high-minded intentions, and in forcing him
through the doorway in spite of his conscientious protests against the
unsurmountable obligation under which the circumstance placed him.</p>
<p>Conversing in this intellectual and dignified manner, the strokes of the gong
passed unheeded; tea had been brought into their presence many times, and night
had fallen before the Mandarin allowed Ling to refer to the matter which had
brought him to the place, and to present his written papers and seals.</p>
<p>“It is a valuable privilege to have so intelligent a person as the
illustrious Ling occupying this position,” remarked the Mandarin, as he
returned the papers; “and not less so on account of the one who preceded
him proving himself to be a person of feeble attainments and an unendurable
deficiency of resource.”</p>
<p>“To one with the all-knowing Li Keen’s mental acquisitions, such a
person must indeed have become excessively offensive,” replied Ling
delicately; “for, as it is truly said, ‘Although there exist many
thousand subjects for elegant conversation, there are persons who cannot meet a
cripple without talking about feet.’”</p>
<p>“He to whom I have referred was such a one,” said Li Keen,
appreciating with an expression of countenance the fitness of Ling’s
proverb. “He was totally inadequate to the requirements of his position;
for he possessed no military knowledge, and was placed in command by those at
Peking as a result of his taking a high place at one of the examinations. But
more than this, although his three years of service were almost completed, I
was quite unsuccessful in convincing him that an unseemly degradation probably
awaited him unless he could furnish me with the means with which to propitiate
the persons in authority at Peking. This he neglected to do with obstinate
pertinacity, which compelled this person to inquire within himself whether one
of so little discernment could be trusted with an important and arduous office.
After much deliberation, this person came to the decision that the Commander in
question was not a fit person, and he therefore reported him to the Imperial
Board of Punishment at Peking as one subject to frequent and periodical
eccentricities, and possessed of less than ordinary intellect. In consequence
of this act of justice, the Commander was degraded to the rank of common
bowman, and compelled to pay a heavy fine in addition.”</p>
<p>“It was a just and enlightened conclusion of the affair,” said
Ling, in spite of a deep feeling of no enthusiasm, “and one which
surprisingly bore out your own prophecy in the matter.”</p>
<p>“It was an inspired warning to persons who should chance to be in a like
position at any time,” replied Li Keen. “So grasping and corrupt
are those who control affairs in Peking that I have no doubt they would
scarcely hesitate in debasing even one so immaculate as the exceptional Ling,
and placing him in some laborious and ill-paid civil department should he not
accede to their extortionate demands.”</p>
<p>This suggestion did not carry with it the unpleasurable emotions which the
Mandarin anticipated it would. The fierce instincts which had been aroused
within Ling by the incident in the cypress wood had died out, while his
lamentable ignorance of military affairs was ever before his mind. These
circumstances, together with his naturally gentle habits, made him regard such
a degradation rather favourably than otherwise. He was meditating within
himself whether he could arrange such a course without delay when the Mandarin
continued:</p>
<p>“That, however, is a possibility which is remote to the extent of at
least two or three years; do not, therefore, let so unpleasing a thought cast
darkness upon your brows or remove the unparalleled splendour of so refined an
occasion... Doubtless the accomplished Ling is a master of the art of
chess-play, for many of our most thoughtful philosophers have declared war to
be nothing but such a game; let this slow-witted and cumbersome person have an
opportunity, therefore, of polishing his declining facilities by a pleasant and
dignified encounter.”</p>
<h3>CHAPTER V</h3>
<p>On the next day, having completed his business at the Yamen, Ling left the
town, and without desiring any ceremony quietly betook himself to his new
residence within the camp, which was situated among the millet fields some
distance from Si-chow. As soon as his presence became known all those who
occupied positions of command, and whose years of service would shortly come to
an end, hastened to present themselves before him, bringing with them offerings
according to the rank they held, they themselves requiring a similar service
from those beneath them. First among these, and next in command to Ling
himself, was the Chief of Bowmen, a person whom Ling observed with extreme
satisfaction to be very powerful in body and possessing a strong and dignified
countenance which showed unquestionable resolution and shone with a tiger-like
tenaciousness of purpose.</p>
<p>“Undoubtedly,” thought Ling, as he observed this noble and
prepossessing person, “here is one who will be able to assist me in
whatever perplexities may arise. Never was there an individual who seemed more
worthy to command and lead; assuredly to him the most intricate and prolonged
military positions will be an enjoyment; the most crafty stratagems of the
enemy as the full moon rising from behind a screen of rushes. Without making
any pretence of knowledge, this person will explain the facts of the case to
him and place himself without limit in his hands.”</p>
<p>For this purpose he therefore detained the Chief of Bowmen when the others
departed, and complimented him, with many expressive phrases, on the excellence
of his appearance, as the thought occurred to him that by this means, without
disclosing the full measure of his ignorance, the person in question might be
encouraged to speak unrestrainedly of the nature of his exploits, and perchance
thereby explain the use of the appliances employed and the meaning of the
various words of order, in all of which details the Commander was as yet most
disagreeably imperfect. In this, however, he was disappointed, for the Chief of
Bowmen, greatly to Ling’s surprise, received all his polished sentences
with somewhat foolish smiles of great self-satisfaction, merely replying from
time to time as he displayed his pigtail to greater advantage or rearranged his
gold-embroidered cloak:</p>
<p>“This person must really pray you to desist; the honour is indeed too
great.”</p>
<p>Disappointed in his hope, and not desiring after this circumstance to expose
his shortcomings to one who was obviously not of a highly-refined
understanding, no matter how great his valour in war or his knowledge of
military affairs might be, Ling endeavoured to lead him to converse of the
bowmen under his charge. In this matter he was more successful, for the Chief
spoke at great length and with evilly-inspired contempt of their inelegance,
their undiscriminating and excessive appetites, and the frequent use which they
made of low words and gestures. Desiring to become acquainted rather with their
methods of warfare than with their domestic details, Ling inquired of him what
formation they relied upon when receiving the foemen.</p>
<p>“It is a matter which has not engaged the attention of this one,”
replied the Chief, with an excessive absence of interest. “There are so
many affairs of intelligent dignity which cannot be put aside, and which occupy
one from beginning to end. As an example, this person may describe how the
accomplished Li-Lu, generally depicted as the Blue-eyed Dove of Virtuous and
Serpent-like Attitudes, has been scattering glory upon the Si-chow Hall of
Celestial Harmony for many days past. It is an enlightened display which the
high-souled Ling should certainly endeavour to dignify with his presence,
especially at the portion where the amiable Li-Lu becomes revealed in the
appearance of a Peking sedan-chair bearer and describes the manner and
likenesses of certain persons—chiefly high-priests of Buddha, excessively
round-bodied merchants who feign to be detained within Peking on affairs of
commerce, maidens who attend at the tables of tea-houses, and those of both
sexes who are within the city for the first time to behold its temples and open
spaces—who are conveyed from place to place in the chair.”</p>
<p>“And the bowmen?” suggested Ling, with difficulty restraining an
undignified emotion.</p>
<p>“Really, the elegant Ling will discover them to be persons of deficient
manners, and quite unworthy of occupying his well-bred conversation,”
replied the Chief. “As regards their methods—if the renowned Ling
insists—they fight by means of their bows, with which they discharge
arrows at the foemen, they themselves hiding behind trees and rocks. Should the
enemy be undisconcerted by the cloud of arrows, and advance, the bowmen are
instructed to make a last endeavour to frighten them back by uttering loud
shouts and feigning the voices of savage beasts of the forest and deadly
snakes.”</p>
<p>“And beyond that?” inquired Ling.</p>
<p>“Beyond that there are no instructions,” replied the Chief.
“The bowmen would then naturally take to flight, or, if such a course
became impossible, run to meet the enemy, protesting that they were convinced
of the justice of their cause, and were determined to fight on their side in
the future.”</p>
<p>“Would it not be of advantage to arm them with cutting weapons
also?” inquired Ling; “so that when all their arrows were
discharged they would still be able to take part in the fight, and not be lost
to us?”</p>
<p>“They would not be lost to us, of course,” replied the Chief,
“as we would still be with them. But such a course as the one you suggest
could not fail to end in dismay. Being as well armed as ourselves, they would
then turn upon us, and, having destroyed us, proceed to establish leaders of
their own.”</p>
<p>As Ling and the Chief of Bowmen conversed in this enlightened manner, there
arose a great outcry from among the tents, and presently there entered to them
a spy who had discovered a strong force of the enemy not more than ten or
twelve li away, who showed every indication of marching shortly in the
direction of Si-chow. In numbers alone, he continued, they were greatly
superior to the bowmen, and all were well armed. The spreading of this news
threw the entire camp into great confusion, many protesting that the day was
not a favourable one on which to fight, others crying that it was their duty to
fall back on Si-chow and protect the women and children. In the midst of this
tumult the Chief of Bowmen returned to Ling, bearing in his hand a written
paper which he regarded in uncontrollable anguish.</p>
<p>“Oh, illustrious Ling,” he cried, restraining his grief with
difficulty, and leaning for support upon the shoulders of two bowmen,
“how prosperous indeed are you! What greater misfortune can engulf a
person who is both an ambitious soldier and an affectionate son, than to lose
such a chance of glory and promotion as only occurs once within the lifetime,
and an affectionate and venerable father upon the same day? Behold this mandate
to attend, without a moment’s delay, at the funeral obsequies of one whom
I left, only last week, in the fullness of health and power. The occasion being
an unsuitable one, I will not call upon the courteous Ling to join me in
sorrow; but his own devout filial piety is so well known that I can
conscientiously rely upon an application for absence to be only a matter of
official ceremony.”</p>
<p>“The application will certainly be regarded as merely official
ceremony,” replied Ling, without resorting to any delicate pretence of
meaning, “and the refined scruples of the person who is addressing me
will be fully met by the official date of his venerated father’s death
being fixed for a more convenient season. In the meantime, the unobtrusive
Chief of Bowmen may take the opportunity of requesting that the family tomb be
kept unsealed until he is heard from again.”</p>
<p>Ling turned away, as he finished this remark, with a dignified feeling of not
inelegant resentment. In this way he chanced to observe a large body of
soldiers which was leaving the camp accompanied by their lesser captains, all
crowned with garlands of flowers and creeping plants. In spite of his very
inadequate attainments regarding words of order, the Commander made it
understood by means of an exceedingly short sentence that he was desirous of
the men returning without delay.</p>
<p>“Doubtless the accomplished Commander, being but newly arrived in this
neighbourhood, is unacquainted with the significance of this display,”
said one of the lesser captains pleasantly. “Know then, O wise and
custom-respecting Ling, that on a similar day many years ago this valiant band
of bowmen was engaged in a very honourable affair with certain of the enemy.
Since then it has been the practice to commemorate the matter with music and
other forms of delight within the large square at Si-chow.”</p>
<p>“Such customs are excellent,” said Ling affably. “On this
occasion, however, the public square will be so insufferably thronged with the
number of timorous and credulous villagers who have pressed into the town that
insufficient justice would be paid to your entrancing display. In consequence
of this, we will select for the purpose some convenient spot in the
neighbourhood. The proceedings will be commenced by a display of arrow-shooting
at moving objects, followed by racing and dancing, in which this person will
lead. I have spoken.”</p>
<p>At these words many of the more courageous among the bowmen became
destructively inspired, and raised shouts of defiance against the enemy,
enumerating at great length the indignities which they would heap upon their
prisoners. Cries of distinction were also given on behalf of Ling, even the
more terrified exclaiming:</p>
<p>“The noble Commander Ling will lead us! He has promised, and assuredly he
will not depart from his word. Shielded by his broad and sacred body, from
which the bullets glance aside harmlessly, we will advance upon the enemy in
the stealthy manner affected by ducks when crossing the swamp. How altogether
superior a person our Commander is when likened unto the leaders of the
foemen—they who go into battle completely surrounded by their
archers!”</p>
<p>Upon this, perceiving the clear direction in which matters were turning, the
Chief of Bowmen again approached Ling.</p>
<p>“Doubtless the highly-favoured person whom I am now addressing has been
endowed with exceptional authority direct from Peking,” he remarked with
insidious politeness. “Otherwise this narrow-minded individual would
suggest that such a decision does not come within the judgment of a
Commander.”</p>
<p>In his ignorance of military matters it had not entered the mind of Ling that
his authority did not give him the power to commence an attack without
consulting other and more distinguished persons. At the suggestion, which he
accepted as being composed of truth, he paused, the enlightened zeal with which
he had been inspired dying out as he plainly understood the difficulties by
which he was enclosed. There seemed a single expedient path for him in the
matter; so, directing a person of exceptional trustworthiness to prepare
himself for a journey, he inscribed a communication to the Mandarin Li Keen, in
which he narrated the facts and asked for speedy directions, and then
despatched it with great urgency to Si-chow.</p>
<h3>CHAPTER VI</h3>
<p>When these matters were arranged, Ling returned to his tent, a victim to
feelings of a deep and confused doubt, for all courses seemed to be surrounded
by extreme danger, with the strong possibility of final disaster. While he was
considering these things attentively, the spy who had brought word of the
presence of the enemy again sought him. As he entered, Ling perceived that his
face was the colour of a bleached linen garment, while there came with him the
odour of sickness.</p>
<p>“There are certain matters which this person has not made known,”
he said, having first expressed a request that he might not be compelled to
stand while he conversed. “The bowmen are as an inferior kind of jackal,
and they who lead them are pigs, but this person has observed that the
Heaven-sent Commander has internal organs like steel hardened in a white fire
and polished by running water. For this reason he will narrate to him the
things he has seen—things at which the lesser ones would undoubtedly
perish in terror without offering to strike a blow.”</p>
<p>“Speak,” said Ling, “without fear and without
concealment.”</p>
<p>“In numbers the rebels are as three to one with the bowmen, and are, in
addition, armed with matchlocks and other weapons; this much I have already
told,” said the spy. “Yesterday they entered the village of Ki
without resistance, as the dwellers there were all peaceable persons, who gain
a living from the fields, and who neither understood nor troubled about the
matters between the rebels and the army. Relying on the promises made by the
rebel chiefs, the villagers even welcomed them, as they had been assured that
they came as buyers of their corn and rice. To-day not a house stands in the
street of Ki, not a person lives. The men they slew quickly, or held for
torture, as they desired at the moment; the boys they hung from the trees as
marks for their arrows. Of the women and children this person, who has since
been subject to several attacks of fainting and vomiting, desires not to speak.
The wells of Ki are filled with the bodies of such as had the good fortune to
be warned in time to slay themselves. The cattle drag themselves from place to
place on their forefeet; the fish in the Heng-Kiang are dying, for they cannot
live on water thickened into blood. All these things this person has
seen.”</p>
<p>When he had finished speaking, Ling remained in deep and funereal thought for
some time. In spite of his mild nature, the words which he had heard filled him
with an inextinguishable desire to slay in hand-to-hand fighting. He regretted
that he had placed the decision of the matter before Li Keen.</p>
<p>“If only this person had a mere handful of brave and expert warriors, he
would not hesitate to fall upon those savage and barbarous characters, and
either destroy them to the last one, or let his band suffer a like fate,”
he murmured to himself.</p>
<p>The return of the messenger found him engaged in reviewing the bowmen, and
still in this mood, so that it was with a commendable feeling of satisfaction,
no less than virtuous contempt, that he learned of the Mandarin’s journey
to Peking as soon as he understood that the rebels were certainly in the
neighbourhood.</p>
<p>“The wise and ornamental Li Keen is undoubtedly consistent in all
matters,” said Ling, with some refined bitterness. “The only
information regarding his duties which this person obtained from him chanced to
be a likening of war to skilful chess-play, and to this end the accomplished
person in question has merely availed himself of a common expedient which
places him at the remote side of the divine Emperor. Yet this act is not
unwelcome, for the responsibility of deciding what course is to be adopted now
clearly rests with this person. He is, as those who are standing by may
perceive, of under the usual height, and of no particular mental or bodily
attainments. But he has eaten the rice of the Emperor, and wears the Imperial
sign embroidered upon his arm. Before him are encamped the enemies of his
master and of his land, and in no way will he turn his back upon them. Against
brave and skilful men, such as those whom this person commands, rebels of a low
and degraded order are powerless, and are, moreover, openly forbidden to
succeed by the Forty-second Mandate in the Sacred Book of Arguments. Should it
have happened that into this assembly any person of a perfidious or
uncourageous nature has gained entrance by guile, and has not been detected and
driven forth by his outraged companions (as would certainly occur if such a
person were discovered), I, Ling, Commander of Bowmen, make an especial and
well-considered request that he shall be struck by a molten thunderbolt if he
turns to flight or holds thoughts of treachery.”</p>
<p>Having thus addressed and encouraged the soldiers, Ling instructed them that
each one should cut and fashion for himself a graceful but weighty club from
among the branches of the trees around, and then return to the tents for the
purpose of receiving food and rice spirit.</p>
<p>When noon was passed, allowing such time as would enable him to reach the camp
of the enemy an hour before darkness, Ling arranged the bowmen in companies of
convenient numbers, and commenced the march, sending forward spies, who were to
work silently and bring back tidings from every point. In this way he
penetrated to within a single li of the ruins of Ki, being informed by the
spies that no outposts of the enemy were between him and that place. Here the
first rest was made to enable the more accurate and bold spies to reach them
with trustworthy information regarding the position and movements of the camp.
With little delay there returned the one who had brought the earliest tidings,
bruised and torn with his successful haste through the forest, but wearing a
complacent and well-satisfied expression of countenance. Without hesitation or
waiting to demand money before he would reveal his knowledge, he at once
disclosed that the greater part of the enemy were rejoicing among the ruins of
Ki, they having discovered there a quantity of opium and a variety of liquids,
while only a small guard remained in the camp with their weapons ready. At
these words Ling sprang from the ground in gladness, so great was his certainty
of destroying the invaders utterly. It was, however, with less pleasurable
emotions that he considered how he should effect the matter, for it was in no
way advisable to divide his numbers into two bands. Without any feeling of
unendurable conceit, he understood that no one but himself could hold the
bowmen before an assault, however weak. In a similar manner, he determined that
it would be more advisable to attack those in the village first. These he might
have reasonable hopes of cutting down without warning the camp, or, in any
event, before those from the camp arrived. To assail the camp first would
assuredly, by the firing, draw upon them those from the village, and in
whatever evil state these might arrive, they would, by their numbers, terrify
the bowmen, who without doubt would have suffered some loss from the
matchlocks.</p>
<p>Waiting for the last light of day, Ling led on the men again, and sending
forward some of the most reliable, surrounded the place of the village silently
and without detection. In the open space, among broken casks and other
inconsiderable matters, plainly shown by the large fires at which burned the
last remains of the houses of Ki, many men moved or lay, some already dull or
in heavy sleep. As the darkness dropped suddenly, the signal of a
peacock’s shriek, three times uttered, rang forth, and immediately a
cloud of arrows, directed from all sides, poured in among those who feasted.
Seeing their foemen defenceless before them, the archers neglected the orders
they had received, and throwing away their bows they rushed in with uplifted
clubs, uttering loud shouts of triumph. The next moment a shot was fired in the
wood, drums beat, and in an unbelievably short space of time a small but
well-armed band of the enemy was among them. Now that all need of caution was
at an end, Ling rushed forward with raised sword, calling to his men that
victory was certainly theirs, and dealing discriminating and inspiriting blows
whenever he met a foeman. Three times he formed the bowmen into a figure
emblematic of triumph, and led them against the line of matchlocks. Twice they
fell back, leaving mingled dead under the feet of the enemy. The third time
they stood firm, and Ling threw himself against the waving rank in a noble and
inspired endeavour to lead the way through. At that moment, when a very
distinguished victory seemed within his hand, his elegant and well-constructed
sword broke upon an iron shield, leaving him defenceless and surrounded by the
enemy.</p>
<p>“Chief among the sublime virtues enjoined by the divine Confucius,”
began Ling, folding his arms and speaking in an unmoved voice, “is an
intelligent submission—” but at that word he fell beneath a rain of
heavy and unquestionably well-aimed blows.</p>
<h3>CHAPTER VII</h3>
<p>Between Si-chow and the village of Ki, in a house completely hidden from
travellers by the tall and black trees which surrounded it, lived an aged and
very wise person whose ways and manner of living had become so distasteful to
his neighbours that they at length agreed to regard him as a powerful and
ill-disposed magician. In this way it became a custom that all very unseemly
deeds committed by those who, in the ordinary course, would not be guilty of
such behaviour, should be attributed to his influence, so that justice might be
effected without persons of assured respectability being put to any
inconvenience. Apart from the feeling which resulted from this just decision,
the uncongenial person in question had become exceedingly unpopular on account
of certain definite actions of his own, as that of causing the greater part of
Si-chow to be burned down by secretly breathing upon the seven sacred
water-jugs to which the town owed its prosperity and freedom from fire.
Furthermore, although possessed of many taels, and able to afford such food as
is to be found upon the tables of Mandarins, he selected from choice dishes of
an objectionable nature; he had been observed to eat eggs of unbecoming
freshness, and the Si-chow Official Printed Leaf made it public that he had, on
an excessively hot occasion, openly partaken of cow’s milk. It is not a
matter for wonder, therefore, that when unnaturally loud thunder was heard in
the neighbourhood of Si-chow the more ignorant and credulous persons refused to
continue in any description of work until certain ceremonies connected with
rice spirit, and the adherence to a reclining position for some hours, had been
conscientiously observed as a protection against evil.</p>
<p>Not even the most venerable person in Si-chow could remember the time when the
magician had not lived there, and as there existed no written record narrating
the incident, it was with well-founded probability that he was said to be
incapable of death. Contrary to the most general practice, although quite
unmarried, he had adopted no son to found a line which would worship his memory
in future years, but had instead brought up and caused to be educated in the
most difficult varieties of embroidery a young girl, to whom he referred, for
want of a more suitable description, as the daughter of his sister, although he
would admit without hesitation, when closely questioned, that he had never
possessed a sister, at the same time, however, alluding with some pride to many
illustrious brothers, who had all obtained distinction in various employments.</p>
<p>Few persons of any high position penetrated into the house of the magician, and
most of these retired with inelegant haste on perceiving that no domestic altar
embellished the great hall. Indeed, not to make concealment of the fact, the
magician was a person who had entirely neglected the higher virtues in an
avaricious pursuit of wealth. In that way all his time and a very large number
of taels had been expended, testing results by means of the four elements, and
putting together things which had been inadequately arrived at by others. It
was confidently asserted in Si-chow that he possessed every manner of printed
leaf which had been composed in whatsoever language, and all the most precious
charms, including many snake-skins of more than ordinary rarity, and the fang
of a black wolf which had been stung by seven scorpions.</p>
<p>On the death of his father the magician had become possessed of great wealth,
yet he contributed little to the funeral obsequies nor did any suggestion of a
durable and expensive nature conveying his enlightened name and virtues down to
future times cause his face to become gladdened. In order to preserve greater
secrecy about the enchantments which he certainly performed, he employed only
two persons within the house, one of whom was blind and the other deaf. In this
ingenious manner he hoped to receive attention and yet be unobserved, the blind
one being unable to see the nature of the incantations which he undertook, and
the deaf one being unable to hear the words. In this, however, he was
unsuccessful, as the two persons always contrived to be present together, and
to explain to one another the nature of the various matters afterwards; but as
they were of somewhat deficient understanding, the circumstance was
unimportant.</p>
<p>It was with more uneasiness that the magician perceived one day that the maiden
whom he had adopted was no longer a child. As he desired secrecy above all
things until he should have completed the one important matter for which he had
laboured all his life, he decided with extreme unwillingness to put into
operation a powerful charm towards her, which would have the effect of
diminishing all her attributes until such time as he might release her again.
Owing to his reluctance in the matter, however, the magic did not act fully,
but only in such a way that her feet became naturally and without binding the
most perfect and beautiful in the entire province of Hu Nan, so that ever
afterwards she was called Pan Fei Mian, in delicate reference to that Empress
whose feet were so symmetrical that a golden lily sprang up wherever she trod.
Afterwards the magician made no further essay in the matter, chiefly because he
was ever convinced that the accomplishment of his desire was within his grasp.</p>
<p>The rumours of armed men in the neighbourhood of Si-chow threw the magician
into an unendurable condition of despair. To lose all, as would most assuredly
happen if he had to leave his arranged rooms and secret preparations and take
to flight, was the more bitter because he felt surer than ever that success was
even standing by his side. The very subtle liquid, which would mix itself into
the component parts of the living creature which drank it, and by an insidious
and harmless process so work that, when the spirit departed, the flesh would
become resolved into a figure of pure and solid gold of the finest quality, had
engaged the refined minds of many of the most expert individuals of remote
ages. With most of these inspired persons, however, the search had been
undertaken in pure-minded benevolence, their chief aim being an honourable
desire to discover a method by which one’s ancestors might be permanently
and effectively preserved in a fit and becoming manner to receive the worship
and veneration of posterity. Yet, in spite of these amiable motives, and of the
fact that the magician merely desired the possession of the secret to enable
him to become excessively wealthy, the affair had been so arranged that it
should come into his possession.</p>
<p>The matter which concerned Mian in the dark wood, when she was only saved by
the appearance of the person who is already known as Ling, entirely removed all
pleasurable emotions from the magician’s mind, and on many occasions he
stated in a definite and systematic manner that he would shortly end an ignoble
career which seemed to be destined only to gloom and disappointment. In this
way an important misunderstanding arose, for when, two days later, during the
sound of matchlock firing, the magician suddenly approached the presence of
Mian with an uncontrollable haste and an entire absence of dignified demeanour,
and fell dead at her feet without expressing himself on any subject whatever,
she deliberately judged that in this manner he had carried his remark into
effect, nor did the closed vessel of yellow liquid which he held in his hand
seem to lead away from this decision. In reality, the magician had fallen owing
to the heavy and conflicting emotions which success had engendered in an
intellect already greatly weakened by his continual disregard of the higher
virtues; for the bottle, indeed, contained the perfection of his entire
life’s study, the very expensive and three-times purified gold liquid.</p>
<p>On perceiving the magician’s condition, Mian at once called for the two
attendants, and directed them to bring from an inner chamber all the most
effective curing substances, whether in the form of powder or liquid. When
these proved useless, no matter in what way they were applied, it became
evident that there could be very little hope of restoring the magician, yet so
courageous and grateful for the benefits which she had received from the person
in question was Mian, that, in spite of the uninviting dangers of the
enterprise, she determined to journey to Ki to invoke the assistance of a
certain person who was known to be very successful in casting out malicious
demons from the bodies of animals, and from casks and barrels, in which they
frequently took refuge, to the great detriment of the quality of the liquid
placed therein.</p>
<p>Not without many hidden fears, Mian set out on her journey, greatly desiring
not to be subjected to an encounter of a nature similar to the one already
recorded; for in such a case she could hardly again hope for the inspired
arrival of the one whom she now often thought of in secret as the well-formed
and symmetrical young sword-user. Nevertheless, an event of equal significance
was destined to prove the wisdom of the well-known remark concerning thoughts
which are occupying one’s intellect and the unexpected appearance of a
very formidable evil spirit; for as she passed along, quickly yet with so
dignified a motion that the moss received no impression beneath her footsteps,
she became aware of a circumstance which caused her to stop by imparting to her
mind two definite and greatly dissimilar emotions.</p>
<p>In a grassy and open space, on the verge of which she stood, lay the dead
bodies of seventeen rebels, all disposed in very degraded attitudes, which
contrasted strongly with the easy and becoming position adopted by the
eighteenth—one who bore the unmistakable emblems of the Imperial army. In
this brave and noble-looking personage Mian at once saw her preserver, and not
doubting that an inopportune and treacherous death had overtaken him, she ran
forward and raised him in her arms, being well assured that however indiscreet
such an action might appear in the case of an ordinary person, the most select
maiden need not hesitate to perform so honourable a service in regard to one
whose virtues had by that time undoubtedly placed him among the Three Thousand
Pure Ones. Being disturbed in this providential manner, Ling opened his eyes,
and faintly murmuring, “Oh, sainted and adorable Koon Yam, Goddess of
Charity, intercede for me with Buddha!” he again lost possession of
himself in the Middle Air. At this remark, which plainly proved Ling to be
still alive, in spite of the fact that both the maiden and the person himself
had thoughts to the contrary, Mian found herself surrounded by a variety of
embarrassing circumstances, among which occurred a remembrance of the dead
magician and the wise person at Ki whom she had set out to summon; but on
considering the various natural and sublime laws which bore directly on the
alternative before her, she discovered that her plain destiny was to endeavour
to restore the breath in the person who was still alive rather than engage on
the very unsatisfactory chance of attempting to call it back to the body from
which it had so long been absent.</p>
<p>Having been inspired to this conclusion—which, when she later examined
her mind, she found not to be repulsive to her own inner feelings—Mian
returned to the house with dexterous speed, and calling together the two
attendants, she endeavoured by means of signs and drawings to explain to them
what she desired to accomplish. Succeeding in this after some delay (for the
persons in question, being very illiterate and narrow-minded, were unable at
first to understand the existence of any recumbent male person other than the
dead magician, whom they thereupon commenced to bury in the garden with
expressions of great satisfaction at their own intelligence in comprehending
Mian’s meaning so readily) they all journeyed to the wood, and bearing
Ling between them, they carried him to the house without further adventure.</p>
<h3>CHAPTER VIII</h3>
<p>It was in the month of Hot Dragon Breaths, many weeks after the fight in the
woods of Ki, that Ling again opened his eyes to find himself in an unknown
chamber, and to recognize in the one who visited him from time to time the
incomparable maiden whose life he had saved in the cypress glade. Not a day had
passed in the meanwhile on which Mian had neglected to offer sacrifices to
Chang-Chung, the deity interested in drugs and healing substances, nor had she
wavered in her firm resolve to bring Ling back to an ordinary existence even
when the attendants had protested that the person in question might without
impropriety be sent to the Restoring Establishment of the Last Chance, so
little did his hope of recovering rest upon the efforts of living beings.</p>
<p>After he had beheld Mian’s face and understood the circumstances of his
escape and recovery, Ling quickly shook off the evil vapours which had held him
down so long, and presently he was able to walk slowly in the courtyard and in
the shady paths of the wood beyond, leaning upon Mian for the support he still
required.</p>
<p>“Oh, graceful one,” he said on such an occasion, when little stood
between him and the full powers which he had known before the battle,
“there is a matter which has been pressing upon this person’s mind
for some time past. It is as dark after light to let the thoughts dwell around
it, yet the thing itself must inevitably soon be regarded, for in this life
one’s actions are for ever regulated by conditions which are neither of
one’s own seeking nor within one’s power of controlling.”</p>
<p>At these words all brightness left Mian’s manner, for she at once
understood that Ling referred to his departure, of which she herself had lately
come to think with unrestrained agitation.</p>
<p>“Oh, Ling,” she exclaimed at length, “most expert of
sword-users and most noble of men, surely never was a maiden more inelegantly
placed than the one who is now by your side. To you she owes her life, yet it
is unseemly for her even to speak of the incident; to you she must look for
protection, yet she cannot ask you to stay by her side. She is indeed alone.
The magician is dead, Ki has fallen, Ling is going, and Mian is undoubtedly the
most unhappy and solitary person between the Wall and the Nan Hai.”</p>
<p>“Beloved Mian,” exclaimed Ling, with inspiring vehemence,
“and is not the utterly unworthy person before you indebted to you in a
double measure that life is still within him? Is not the strength which now
promotes him to such exceptional audacity as to aspire to your lovely hand, of
your own creating? Only encourage Ling to entertain a well-founded hope that on
his return he shall not find you partaking of the wedding feast of some wealthy
and exceptionally round-bodied Mandarin, and this person will accomplish the
journey to Canton and back as it were in four strides.”</p>
<p>“Oh, Ling, reflexion of my ideal, holder of my soul, it would indeed be
very disagreeable to my own feelings to make any reply save one,” replied
Mian, scarcely above a breath-voice. “Gratitude alone would direct me,
were it not that the great love which fills me leaves no resting-place for any
other emotion than itself. Go if you must, but return quickly, for your absence
will weigh upon Mian like a dragon-dream.”</p>
<p>“Violet light of my eyes,” exclaimed Ling, “even in
surroundings which with the exception of the matter before us are uninspiring
in the extreme, your virtuous and retiring encouragement yet raises me to such
a commanding eminence of demonstrative happiness that I fear I shall become
intolerably self-opinionated towards my fellow-men in consequence.”</p>
<p>“Such a thing is impossible with my Ling,” said Mian, with
conviction. “But must you indeed journey to Canton?”</p>
<p>“Alas!” replied Ling, “gladly would this person decide
against such a course did the matter rest with him, for as the Verses say,
‘It is needless to apply the ram’s head to the unlocked
door.’ But Ki is demolished, the unassuming Mandarin Li Keen has retired
to Peking, and of the fortunes of his bowmen this person is entirely
ignorant.”</p>
<p>“Such as survived returned to their homes,” replied Mian,
“and Si-chow is safe, for the scattered and broken rebels fled to the
mountains again; so much this person has learned.”</p>
<p>“In that case Si-chow is undoubtedly safe for the time, and can be left
with prudence,” said Ling. “It is an unfortunate circumstance that
there is no Mandarin of authority between here and Canton who can receive from
this person a statement of past facts and give him instructions for the
future.”</p>
<p>“And what will be the nature of such instructions as will be given at
Canton?” demanded Mian.</p>
<p>“By chance they may take the form of raising another company of
bowmen,” said Ling, with a sigh, “but, indeed, if this person can
obtain any weight by means of his past service, they will tend towards a
pleasant and unambitious civil appointment.”</p>
<p>“Oh, my artless and noble-minded lover!” exclaimed Mian,
“assuredly a veil has been before your eyes during your residence in
Canton, and your naturally benevolent mind has turned all things into good, or
you would not thus hopefully refer to your brilliant exploits in the past. Of
what commercial benefit have they been to the sordid and miserly persons in
authority, or in what way have they diverted a stream of taels into their
insatiable pockets? Far greater is the chance that had Si-chow fallen many of
its household goods would have found their way into the Yamens of Canton.
Assuredly in Li Keen you will have a friend who will make many delicate
allusions to your ancestors when you meet, and yet one who will float many
barbed whispers to follow you when you have passed; for you have planted shame
before him in the eyes of those who would otherwise neither have eyes to see
nor tongues to discuss the matter. It is for such a reason that this person
distrusts all things connected with the journey, except your constancy, oh, my
true and strong one.”</p>
<p>“Such faithfulness would alone be sufficient to assure my safe return if
the matter were properly represented to the supreme Deities,” said Ling.
“Let not the thin curtain of bitter water stand before your lustrous eyes
any longer, then, the events which have followed one another in the past few
days in a fashion that can only be likened to thunder following lightning are
indeed sufficient to distress one with so refined and swan-like an
organization, but they are now assuredly at an end.”</p>
<p>“It is a hope of daily recurrence to this person,” replied Mian,
honourably endeavouring to restrain the emotion which openly exhibited itself
in her eyes; “for what maiden would not rather make successful offerings
to the Great Mother Kum-Fa than have the most imposing and verbose Triumphal
Arch erected to commemorate an empty and unsatisfying constancy?”</p>
<p>In this amiable manner the matter was arranged between Ling and Mian, as they
sat together in the magician’s garden drinking peach-tea, which the two
attendants—not without discriminating and significant expressions between
themselves—brought to them from time to time. Here Ling made clear the
whole manner of his life from his earliest memory to the time when he fell in
dignified combat, nor did Mian withhold anything, explaining in particular such
charms and spells of the magician as she had knowledge of, and in this graceful
manner materially assisting her lover in the many disagreeable encounters and
conflicts which he was shortly to experience.</p>
<p>It was with even more objectionable feelings than before that Ling now
contemplated his journey to Canton, involving as it did the separation from one
who had become as the shadow of his existence, and by whose side he had an
undoubted claim to stand. Yet the necessity of the undertaking was no less than
before, and the full possession of all his natural powers took away his only
excuse for delaying in the matter. Without any pleasurable anticipations,
therefore, he consulted the Sacred Flat and Round Sticks, and learning that the
following day would be propitious for the journey, he arranged to set out in
accordance with the omen.</p>
<p>When the final moment arrived at which the invisible threads of constantly
passing emotions from one to the other must be broken, and when Mian perceived
that her lover’s horse was restrained at the door by the two attendants,
who with unsuspected delicacy of feeling had taken this opportunity of
withdrawing, the noble endurance which had hitherto upheld her melted away, and
she became involved in very melancholy and obscure meditations until she
observed that Ling also was quickly becoming affected by a similar gloom.</p>
<p>“Alas!” she exclaimed, “how unworthy a person I am thus to
impose upon my lord a greater burden than that which already weighs him down!
Rather ought this one to dwell upon the happiness of that day, when, after
successfully evading or overthrowing the numerous bands of assassins which
infest the road from here to Canton, and after escaping or recovering from the
many deadly pestilences which invariably reduce that city at this season of the
year, he shall triumphantly return. Assuredly there is a highly-polished
surface united to every action in life, no matter how funereal it may at first
appear. Indeed, there are many incidents compared with which death itself is
welcome, and to this end Mian has reserved a farewell gift.”</p>
<p>Speaking in this manner the devoted and magnanimous maiden placed in
Ling’s hands the transparent vessel of liquid which the magician had
grasped when he fell. “This person,” she continued, speaking with
difficulty, “places her lover’s welfare incomparably before her own
happiness, and should he ever find himself in a situation which is unendurably
oppressive, and from which death is the only escape—such as inevitable
tortures, the infliction of violent madness, or the subjection by magic to the
will of some designing woman—she begs him to accept this means of freeing
himself without regarding her anguish beyond expressing a clearly defined last
wish that the two persons in question may be in the end happily reunited in
another existence.”</p>
<p>Assured by this last evidence of affection, Ling felt that he had no longer any
reason for internal heaviness; his spirits were immeasurably raised by the
fragrant incense of Mian’s great devotion, and under its influence he was
even able to breathe towards her a few words of similar comfort as he left the
spot and began his journey.</p>
<h3>CHAPTER IX</h3>
<p>On entering Canton, which he successfully accomplished without any unpleasant
adventure, the marked absence of any dignified ostentation which had been
accountable for many of Ling’s misfortunes in the past, impelled him
again to reside in the same insignificant apartment that he had occupied when
he first visited the city as an unknown and unimportant candidate. In
consequence of this, when Ling was communicating to any person the signs by
which messengers might find him, he was compelled to add, “the
neighbourhood in which this contemptible person resides is that officially
known as ‘the mean quarter favoured by the lower class of those who
murder by treachery,’” and for this reason he was not always
treated with the regard to which his attainments entitled him, or which he
would have unquestionably received had he been able to describe himself as of
“the partly-drained and uninfected area reserved to Mandarins and their
friends.”</p>
<p>It was with an ignoble feeling of mental distress that Ling exhibited himself
at the Chief Office of Warlike Deeds and Arrangements on the following day; for
the many disadvantageous incidents of his past life had repeated themselves
before his eyes while he slept, and the not unhopeful emotions which he had
felt when in the inspiring presence of Mian were now altogether absent. In
spite of the fact that he reached the office during the early gong strokes of
the morning, it was not until the withdrawal of light that he reached any
person who was in a position to speak with him on the matter, so numerous were
the lesser ones through whose chambers he had to pass in the process. At length
he found himself in the presence of an upper one who had the appearance of
being acquainted with the circumstances, and who received him with dignity,
though not with any embarrassing exhibition of respect or servility.</p>
<p>“‘The hero of the illustrious encounter beyond the walls of
Si-chow,’” exclaimed that official, reading the words from the
tablet of introduction which Ling had caused to be carried into him, and at the
same time examining the person in question closely. “Indeed, no such one
is known to those within this office, unless the words chance to point to the
courteous and unassuming Mandarin Li Keen, who, however, is at this moment
recovering his health at Peking, as set forth in the amiable and impartial
report which we have lately received from him.”</p>
<p>At these words Ling plainly understood that there was little hope of the last
events becoming profitable on his account.</p>
<p>“Did not the report to which allusion has been made bear reference to one
Ling, Commander of the Archers, who thrice led on the fighting men, and who was
finally successful in causing the rebels to disperse towards the
mountains?” he asked, in a voice which somewhat trembled.</p>
<p>“There is certainly reference to one of the name you mention,” said
the other; “but regarding the terms—perhaps this person would
better protect his own estimable time by displaying the report within your
sight.”</p>
<p>With these words the upper one struck a gong several times, and after receiving
from an inner chamber the parchment in question, he placed it before Ling, at
the same time directing a lesser one to interpose between it and the one who
read it a large sheet of transparent substance, so that destruction might not
come to it, no matter in what way its contents affected the reader. Thereon
Ling perceived the following facts, very skilfully inscribed with the evident
purpose of inducing persons to believe, without question, that words so
elegantly traced must of necessity be truthful also.</p>
<p class="letter">
“<i>A Benevolent Example of the Intelligent Arrangement by which the most
Worthy Persons outlive those who are Incapable.</i><br/>
<br/>
The circumstances connected with the office of the valuable and
accomplished Mandarin of Warlike Deeds and Arrangements at Si-chow have, in
recent times, been of anything but a prepossessing order. Owing to the very
inadequate methods adopted by those who earn a livelihood by conveying
necessities from the more enlightened portions of the Empire to that place, it
so came about that for a period of five days the Yamen was entirely unsupplied
with the fins of sharks or even with goats’ eyes. To add to the polished
Mandarin’s distress of mind the barbarous and slow-witted rebels who
infest those parts took this opportunity to destroy the town and most of its
inhabitants, the matter coming about as follows:<br/>
“The feeble and commonplace person named Ling who commands the bowmen
had but recently been elevated to that distinguished position from a menial and
degraded occupation (for which, indeed, his stunted intellect more aptly fitted
him); and being in consequence very greatly puffed out in self-gratification,
he became an easy prey to the cunning of the rebels, and allowed himself to be
beguiled into a trap, paying for this contemptible stupidity with his life. The
town of Si-chow was then attacked, and being in this manner left defenceless
through the weakness—or treachery—of the person Ling, who had
contrived to encompass the entire destruction of his unyielding company, it
fell after a determined and irreproachable resistance; the Mandarin Li Keen
being told, as, covered with the blood of the foemen, he was dragged away from
the thickest part of the unequal conflict by his followers, that he was the
last person to leave the town. On his way to Peking with news of this valiant
defence, the Mandarin was joined by the Chief of Bowmen, who had understood and
avoided the very obvious snare into which the stagnant-minded Commander had led
his followers, in spite of disinterested advice to the contrary. For this
intelligent perception, and for general nobility of conduct when in battle, the
versatile Chief of Bowmen is by this written paper strongly recommended to the
dignity of receiving the small metal Embellishment of Valour.<br/>
“It has been suggested to the Mandarin Li Keen that the bestowal of
the Crystal Button would only be a fit and graceful reward for his
indefatigable efforts to uphold the dignity of the sublime Emperor; but to all
such persons the Mandarin has sternly replied that such a proposal would more
fitly originate from the renowned and valuable Office of Warlike Deeds and
Arrangements, he well knowing that the wise and engaging persons who conduct
that indispensable and well-regulated department are gracefully voracious in
their efforts to reward merit, even when it is displayed, as in the case in
question, by one who from his position will inevitably soon be urgently
petitioning in a like manner on their behalf.”</p>
<p>When Ling had finished reading this elegantly arranged but exceedingly
misleading parchment, he looked up with eyes from which he vainly endeavoured
to restrain the signs of undignified emotion, and said to the upper one:</p>
<p>“It is difficult employment for a person to refrain from unendurable
thoughts when his unassuming and really conscientious efforts are represented
in a spirit of no satisfaction, yet in this matter the very expert Li Keen
appears to have gone beyond himself; the Commander Ling, who is herein
represented as being slain by the enemy, is, indeed, the person who is standing
before you, and all the other statements are in a like exactness.”</p>
<p>“The short-sighted individual who for some hidden desire of his own is
endeavouring to present himself as the corrupt and degraded creature Ling, has
overlooked one important circumstance,” said the upper one, smiling in a
very intolerable manner, at the same time causing his head to move slightly
from side to side in the fashion of one who rebukes with assumed geniality;
and, turning over the written paper, he displayed upon the under side the
Imperial vermilion Sign. “Perhaps,” he continued, “the
omniscient person will still continue in his remarks, even with the evidence of
the Emperor’s unerring pencil to refute him.”</p>
<p>At these words and the undoubted testimony of the red mark, which plainly
declared the whole of the written matter to be composed of truth, no matter
what might afterwards transpire, Ling understood that very little prosperity
remained with him.</p>
<p>“But the town of Si-chow,” he suggested, after examining his mind;
“if any person in authority visited the place, he would inevitably find
it standing and its inhabitants in agreeable health.”</p>
<p>“The persistent person who is so assiduously occupying my intellectual
moments with empty words seems to be unaccountably deficient in his knowledge
of the customs of refined society and of the meaning of the Imperial
Signet,” said the other, with an entire absence of benevolent
consideration. “That Si-chow has fallen and that Ling is dead are two
utterly uncontroversial matters truthfully recorded. If a person visited
Si-chow, he might find it rebuilt or even inhabited by those from the
neighbouring villages or by evil spirits taking the forms of the ones who
formerly lived there; as in a like manner, Ling might be restored to existence
by magic, or his body might be found and possessed by an outcast demon who
desired to revisit the earth for a period. Such circumstances do not in any way
disturb the announcement that Si-chow has without question fallen, and that
Ling has officially ceased to live, of which events notifications have been
sent to all who are concerned in the matters.”</p>
<p>As the upper one ceased speaking, four strokes sounded upon the gong, and Ling
immediately found himself carried into the street by the current of both lesser
and upper ones who poured forth at the signal. The termination of this
conversation left Ling in a more unenviable state of dejection than any of the
many preceding misfortunes had done, for with enlarged inducements to possess
himself of a competent appointment he seemed to be even further removed from
this attainment than he had been at any time in his life. He might, indeed,
present himself again for the public examinations; but in order to do even that
it would be necessary for him to wait almost a year, nor could he assure
himself that his efforts would again be likely to result in an equal success.
Doubts also arose within his mind of the course which he should follow in such
a case; whether to adopt a new name, involving as it would certain humiliation
and perhaps disgrace if detection overtook his footsteps, or still to possess
the title of one who was in a measure dead, and hazard the likelihood of having
any prosperity which he might obtain reduced to nothing if the fact should
become public.</p>
<p>As Ling reflected upon such details he found himself without intention before
the house of a wise person who had become very wealthy by advising others on
all matters, but chiefly on those connected with strange occurrences and such
events as could not be settled definitely either one way or the other until a
remote period had been reached. Becoming assailed by a curious desire to know
what manner of evils particularly attached themselves to such as were
officially dead but who nevertheless had an ordinary existence, Ling placed
himself before this person, and after arranging the manner of reward related to
him so many of the circumstances as were necessary to enable a full
understanding to be reached, but at the same time in no way betraying his own
interest in the matter.</p>
<p>“Such inflictions are to no degree frequent,” said the wise person
after he had consulted a polished sphere of the finest red jade for some time;
“and this is in a measure to be regretted, as the hair of these
persons—provided they die a violent death, which is invariably the
case—constitutes a certain protection against being struck by falling
stars, or becoming involved in unsuccessful law cases. The persons in question
can be recognized with certainty in the public ways by the unnatural pallor of
their faces and by the general repulsiveness of their appearance, but as they
soon take refuge in suicide, unless they have the fortune to be removed
previously by accident, it is an infrequent matter that one is gratified by the
sight. During their existence they are subject to many disorders from which the
generality of human beings are benevolently preserved; they possess no rights
of any kind, and if by any chance they are detected in an act of a seemingly
depraved nature, they are liable to judgment at the hands of the passers-by
without any form whatever, and to punishment of a more severe order than that
administered to commonplace criminals. There are many other disadvantages
affecting such persons when they reach the Middle Air, of which the
chief—”</p>
<p>“This person is immeasurably indebted for such a clear explanation of the
position,” interrupted Ling, who had a feeling of not desiring to
penetrate further into the detail; “but as he perceives a line of anxious
ones eagerly waiting at the door to obtain advice and consolation from so
expert and amiable a wizard, he will not make himself uncongenial any longer
with his very feeble topics of conversation.”</p>
<p>By this time Ling plainly comprehended that he had been marked out from the
beginning—perhaps for all the knowledge which he had to the opposite
effect, from a period in the life of a far-removed ancestor—to be an
object of marked derision and the victim of all manner of malevolent demons in
whatever actions he undertook. In this condition of understanding his mind
turned gratefully to the parting gift of Mian whom he had now no hope of
possessing; for the intolerable thought of uniting her to so objectionable a
being as himself would have been dismissed as utterly inelegant even had he
been in a manner of living to provide for her adequately, which itself seemed
clearly impossible. Disregarding all similar emotions, therefore, he walked
without pausing to his abode, and stretching his body upon the rushes, drank
the entire liquid unhesitatingly, and prepared to pass beyond with a tranquil
mind entirely given up to thoughts and images of Mian.</p>
<h3>CHAPTER X</h3>
<p>Upon a certain occasion, the particulars of which have already been recorded,
Ling had judged himself to have passed into the form of a spirit on beholding
the ethereal form of Mian bending over him. After swallowing the entire liquid,
which had cost the dead magician so much to distil and make perfect, it was
with a well-assured determination of never again awakening that he lost the
outward senses and floated in the Middle Air, so that when his eyes next opened
upon what seemed to be the bare walls of his own chamber, his first thought was
a natural conviction that the matter had been so arranged either out of a
charitable desire that he should not be overcome by a too sudden transition to
unparalleled splendour, or that such a reception was the outcome of some
dignified jest on the part of certain lesser and more cheerful spirits. After
waiting in one position for several hours, however, and receiving no summons or
manifestation of a celestial nature, he began to doubt the qualities of the
liquid, and applying certain tests, he soon ascertained that he was still in
the lower world and unharmed. Nevertheless, this circumstance did not tend in
any way to depress his mind, for, doubtless owing to some hidden virtue of the
fluid, he felt an enjoyable emotion that he still lived; all his attributes
appeared to be purified, and he experienced an inspired certainty of feeling
that an illustrious and highly-remunerative future lay before one who still had
an ordinary existence after being both officially killed and self-poisoned.</p>
<p>In this intelligent disposition thoughts of Mian recurred to him with
unreproved persistence, and in order to convey to her an account of the various
matters which had engaged him since his arrival at the city, and a
well-considered declaration of the unchanged state of his own feelings towards
her, he composed and despatched with impetuous haste the following delicate
verses:</p>
<p class="center">
CONSTANCY</p>
<p class="poem">
About the walls and gates of Canton<br/>
Are many pleasing and entertaining maidens;<br/>
Indeed, in the eyes of their friends and of the passers-by<br/>
Some of them are exceptionally adorable.<br/>
The person who is inscribing these lines, however,<br/>
Sees before him, as it were, an assemblage of deformed and un-prepossessing
hags,<br/>
Venerable in age and inconsiderable in appearance;<br/>
For the dignified and majestic image of Mian is ever before him,<br/>
Making all others very inferior.<br/>
<br/>
Within the houses and streets of Canton<br/>
Hang many bright lanterns.<br/>
The ordinary person who has occasion to walk by night<br/>
Professes to find them highly lustrous.<br/>
But there is one who thinks contrary facts,<br/>
And when he goes forth he carries two long curved poles<br/>
To prevent him from stumbling among the dark and hidden places;<br/>
For he has gazed into the brilliant and pellucid orbs of Mian,<br/>
And all other lights are dull and practically opaque.<br/>
<br/>
In various parts of the literary quarter of Canton<br/>
Reside such as spend their time in inward contemplation.<br/>
In spite of their generally uninviting exteriors<br/>
Their reflexions are often of a very profound order.<br/>
Yet the unpopular and persistently-abused Ling<br/>
Would unhesitatingly prefer his own thoughts to theirs,<br/>
For what makes this person’s thoughts far more pleasing<br/>
Is that they are invariably connected with the virtuous and ornamental Mian.</p>
<p>Becoming very amiably disposed after this agreeable occupation, Ling surveyed
himself at the disc of polished metal, and observed with surprise and shame the
rough and uninviting condition of his person. He had, indeed, although it was
not until some time later that he became aware of the circumstance, slept for
five days without interruption, and it need not therefore be a matter of wonder
or of reproach to him that his smooth surfaces had become covered with short
hair. Reviling himself bitterly for the appearance which he conceived he must
have exhibited when he conducted his business, and to which he now in part
attributed his ill-success, Ling went forth without delay, and quickly
discovering one of those who remove hair publicly for a very small sum, he
placed himself in the chair, and directed that his face, arms, and legs should
be denuded after the manner affected by the ones who make a practice of
observing the most recent customs.</p>
<p>“Did the illustrious individual who is now conferring distinction on this
really worn-out chair by occupying it express himself in favour of having the
face entirely denuded?” demanded the one who conducted the operation; for
these persons have become famous for their elegant and persistent ability to
discourse, and frequently assume ignorance in order that they themselves may
make reply, and not for the purpose of gaining knowledge. “Now, in the
objectionable opinion of this unintelligent person, who has a presumptuous
habit of offering his very undesirable advice, a slight covering on the upper
lip, delicately arranged and somewhat fiercely pointed at the extremities,
would bestow an appearance of—how shall this illiterate person explain
himself?—dignity?—matured reflexion?—doubtless the
accomplished nobleman before me will understand what is intended with a more
knife-like accuracy than this person can describe it—but confer that
highly desirable effect upon the face of which at present it is entirely
destitute... ‘Entirely denuded?’ Then without fail it shall
certainly be so, O incomparable personage... Does the versatile Mandarin now
present profess any concern as to the condition of the rice plants?... Indeed,
the remark is an inspired one; the subject is totally devoid of interest to a
person of intelligence ... A remarkable and gravity-removing event transpired
within the notice of this unassuming person recently. A discriminating
individual had purchased from him a portion of his justly renowned
Thrice-extracted Essence of Celestial Herb Oil—a preparation which in
this experienced person’s opinion, indeed, would greatly relieve the
undoubted afflictions from which the one before him is evidently
suffering—when after once anointing himself—”</p>
<p>A lengthy period containing no words caused Ling, who had in the meantime
closed his eyes and lost Canton and all else in delicate thoughts of Mian, to
look up. That which met his attention on doing so filled him with an
intelligent wonder, for the person before him held in his hand what had the
appearance of a tuft of bright yellow hair, which shone in the light of the sun
with a most engaging splendour, but which he nevertheless regarded with a most
undignified expression of confusion and awe.</p>
<p>“Illustrious demon,” he cried at length, kow-towing very
respectfully, “have the extreme amiableness to be of a benevolent
disposition, and do not take an unworthy and entirely unremunerative revenge
upon this very unimportant person for failing to detect and honour you from the
beginning.”</p>
<p>“Such words indicate nothing beyond an excess of hemp spirit,”
answered Ling, with signs of displeasure. “To gain my explicit esteem,
make me smooth without delay, and do not exhibit before me the lock of hair
which, from its colour and appearance, has evidently adorned the head of one of
those maidens whose duty it is to quench the thirst of travellers in the long
narrow rooms of this city.”</p>
<p>“Majestic and anonymous spirit,” said the other, with extreme
reverence, and an entire absence of the appearance of one who had gazed into
too many vessels, “if such be your plainly-expressed desire, this
superficial person will at once proceed to make smooth your peach-like skin,
and with a carefulness inspired by the certainty that the most unimportant
wound would give forth liquid fire, in which he would undoubtedly perish.
Nevertheless, he desires to make it evident that this hair is from the head of
no maiden, being, indeed, the uneven termination of your own sacred pigtail,
which this excessively self-confident slave took the inexcusable liberty of
removing, and which changed in this manner within his hand in order to
administer a fit reproof for his intolerable presumption.”</p>
<p>Impressed by the mien and unquestionable earnestness of the remover of hair,
Ling took the matter which had occasioned these various emotions in his hand
and examined it. His amazement was still greater when he perceived
that—in spite of the fact that it presented every appearance of having
been cut from his own person—none of the qualities of hair remained in
it; it was hard and wire-like, possessing, indeed, both the nature and the
appearance of a metal.</p>
<p>As he gazed fixedly and with astonishment, there came back into the remembrance
of Ling certain obscure and little-understood facts connected with the
limitless wealth possessed by the Yellow Emperor—of which the great gold
life-like image in the Temple of Internal Symmetry at Peking alone bears
witness now—and of his lost secret. Many very forcible prophecies and
omens in his own earlier life, of which the rendering and accomplishment had
hitherto seemed to be dark and incomplete, passed before him, and various
matters which Mian had related to him concerning the habits and speech of the
magician took definite form within his mind. Deeply impressed by the exact
manner in which all these circumstances fitted together, one into another, Ling
rewarded the person before him greatly beyond his expectation, and hurried
without delay to his own chamber.</p>
<h3>CHAPTER XI</h3>
<p>For many hours Ling remained in his room, examining in his mind all passages,
either in his own life or in the lives of others, which might by any chance
have influence on the event before him. In this thorough way he became assured
that the competition and its results, his journey to Si-chow with the encounter
in the cypress wood, the flight of the incapable and treacherous Mandarin, and
the battle of Ki, were all, down to the matter of the smallest detail, parts of
a symmetrical and complete scheme, tending to his present condition. Cheered
and upheld by this proof of the fact that very able deities were at work on his
behalf, he turned his intellect from the entrancing subject to a contemplation
of the manner in which his condition would enable him to frustrate the
uninventive villainies of the obstinate person Li Keen, and to provide a
suitable house and mode of living to which he would be justified in introducing
Mian, after adequate marriage ceremonies had been observed between them. In
this endeavour he was less successful than he had imagined would be the case,
for when he had first fully understood that his body was of such a substance
that nothing was wanting to transmute it into fine gold but the absence of the
living spirit, he had naturally, and without deeply examining the detail,
assumed that so much gold might be considered to be in his possession. Now,
however, a very definite thought arose within him that his own wishes and
interests would have been better secured had the benevolent spirits who
undertook the matter placed the secret within his knowledge in such a way as to
enable him to administer the fluid to some very heavy and inexpensive animal,
so that the issue which seemed inevitable before the enjoyment of the riches
could be entered upon should not have touched his own comfort so closely. To a
person of Ling’s refined imagination it could not fail to be a subject of
internal reproach that while he would become the most precious dead body in the
world, his value in life might not be very honourably placed even by the most
complimentary one who should require his services. Then came the thought,
which, however degraded, he found himself unable to put quite beyond him, that
if in the meantime he were able to gain a sufficiency for Mian and himself,
even her pure and delicate love might not be able to bear so offensive a test
as that of seeing him grow old and remain intolerably healthy—perhaps
with advancing years actually becoming lighter day by day, and thereby
lessening in value before her eyes—when the natural infirmities of age
and the presence of an ever-increasing posterity would make even a moderate
amount of taels of inestimable value.</p>
<p>No doubt remained in Ling’s mind that the process of frequently making
smooth his surfaces would yield an amount of gold enough to suffice for his own
needs, but a brief consideration of the matter convinced him that this source
would be inadequate to maintain an entire household even if he continually
denuded himself to an almost ignominious extent. As he fully weighed these
varying chances the certainty became more clear to him with every thought that
for the virtuous enjoyment of Mian’s society one great sacrifice was
required of him. This act, it seemed to be intimated, would without delay
provide for an affluent and lengthy future, and at the same time would
influence all the spirits—even those who had been hitherto
evilly-disposed towards him—in such a manner that his enemies would be
removed from his path by a process which would expose them to public ridicule,
and he would be assured in founding an illustrious and enduring line. To
accomplish this successfully necessitated the loss of at least the greater part
of one entire member, and for some time the disadvantages of going through an
existence with only a single leg or arm seemed more than a sufficient price to
pay even for the definite advantages which would be made over to him in return.
This unworthy thought, however, could not long withstand the memory of
Mian’s steadfast and high-minded affection, and the certainty of her
enlightened gladness at his return even in the imperfect condition which he
anticipated. Nor was there absent from his mind a dimly-understood hope that
the matter did not finally rest with him, but that everything which he might be
inspired to do was in reality only a portion of the complete and arranged
system into which he had been drawn, and in which his part had been assigned to
him from the beginning without power for him to deviate, no matter how much to
the contrary the thing should appear.</p>
<p>As no advantage would be gained by making any delay, Ling at once sought the
most favourable means of putting his resolution into practice, and after many
skilful and insidious inquiries he learnt of an accomplished person who made a
consistent habit of cutting off limbs which had become troublesome to their
possessors either through accident or disease. Furthermore, he was said to be
of a sincere and charitable disposition, and many persons declared that on no
occasion had he been known to make use of the helpless condition of those who
visited him in order to extort money from them.</p>
<p>Coming to the ill-considered conclusion that he would be able to conceal within
his own breast the true reason for the operation, Ling placed himself before
the person in question, and exhibited the matter to him so that it would appear
as though his desires were promoted by the presence of a small but persistent
sprite which had taken its abode within his left thigh, and there resisted
every effort of the most experienced wise persons to induce it to come forth
again. Satisfied with this explanation of the necessity of the deed, the one
who undertook the matter proceeded, with Ling’s assistance, to sharpen
his cutting instruments and to heat the hardening irons; but no sooner had he
made a shallow mark to indicate the lines which his knife should take, than his
subtle observation at once showed him that the facts had been represented to
him in a wrong sense, and that his visitor, indeed, was composed of no common
substance. Being of a gentle and forbearing disposition, he did not manifest
any indication of rage at the discovery, but amiably and unassumingly pointed
out that such a course was not respectful towards himself, and that, moreover,
Ling might incur certain well-defined and highly undesirable maladies as a
punishment for the deception.</p>
<p>Overcome with remorse at deceiving so courteous and noble-minded a person, Ling
fully explained the circumstances to him, not even concealing from him certain
facts which related to the actions of remote ancestors, but which,
nevertheless, appeared to have influenced the succession of events. When he had
made an end of the narrative, the other said:</p>
<p>“Behold now, it is truly remarked that every Mandarin has three hands and
every soldier a like number of feet, yet it is a saying which is rather to be
regarded as manifesting the deep wisdom and discrimination of the speaker than
as an actual fact which can be taken advantage of when one is so
minded—least of all by so valiant a Commander as the one before me, who
has clearly proved that in time of battle he has exactly reversed the
position.”</p>
<p>“The loss would undoubtedly be of considerable inconvenience
occasionally,” admitted Ling, “yet none the less the sage remark of
Huai Mei-shan, ‘When actually in the embrace of a voracious and powerful
wild animal, the desirability of leaving a limb is not a matter to be subjected
to lengthy consideration,’ is undoubtedly a valuable guide for general
conduct. This person has endured many misfortunes and suffered many injustices;
he has known the wolf-gnawings of great hopes, which have withered and daily
grown less when the difficulties of maintaining an honourable and illustrious
career have unfolded themselves within his sight. Before him still lie the
attractions of a moderate competency to be shared with the one whose absence
would make even the Upper Region unendurable, and after having this entrancing
future once shattered by the tiger-like cupidity of a depraved and incapable
Mandarin, he is determined to welcome even the sacrifice which you condemn
rather than let the opportunity vanish through indecision.”</p>
<p>“It is not an unworthy or abandoned decision,” said the one whose
aid Ling had invoked, “nor a matter in which this person would refrain
from taking part, were there no other and more agreeable means by which the
same results may be attained. A circumstance has occurred within this
superficial person’s mind, however: A brother of the one who is
addressing you is by profession one of those who purchase large undertakings
for which they have not the money to pay, and who thereupon by various
expedients gain the ear of the thrifty, enticing them by fair offers of return
to entrust their savings for the purpose of paying off the debt. These persons
are ever on the watch for transactions by which they inevitably prosper without
incurring any obligation, and doubtless my brother will be able to gather a
just share of the value of your highly-remunerative body without submitting you
to the insufferable annoyance of losing a great part of it prematurely.”</p>
<p>Without clearly understanding how so inviting an arrangement could be effected,
the manner of speaking was exceedingly alluring to Ling’s mind, perplexed
as he had become through weighing and considering the various attitudes of the
entire matter. To receive a certain and sufficient sum of money without his
person being in any way mutilated would be a satisfactory, but as far as he had
been able to observe an unapproachable, solution to the difficulty. In the mind
of the amiable person with whom he was conversing, however, the accomplishment
did not appear to be surrounded by unnatural obstacles, so that Ling was
content to leave the entire design in his hands, after stating that he would
again present himself on a certain occasion when it was asserted that the
brother in question would be present.</p>
<p>So internally lightened did Ling feel after this inspiring conversation, and so
confident of a speedy success had the obliging person’s words made him
become, that for the first time since his return to Canton he was able to take
an intellectual interest in the pleasures of the city. Becoming aware that the
celebrated play entitled “The Precious Lamp of Spotted Butterfly
Temple” was in process of being shown at the Tea Garden of Rainbow Lights
and Voices, he purchased an entrance, and after passing several hours in this
conscientious enjoyment, returned to his chamber, and passed a night untroubled
by any manifestations of an unpleasant nature.</p>
<h3>CHAPTER XII</h3>
<p>Chang-ch’un, the brother of the one to whom Ling had applied in his
determination, was confidently stated to be one of the richest persons in
Canton. So great was the number of enterprises in which he had possessions,
that he himself was unable to keep an account of them, and it was asserted that
upon occasions he had run through the streets, crying aloud that such an
undertaking had been the subject of most inferior and uninviting dreams and
omens (a custom observed by those who wish a venture ill), whereas upon
returning and consulting his written parchments, it became plain to him that he
had indulged in a very objectionable exhibition, as he himself was the person
most interested in the success of the matter. Far from discouraging him,
however, such incidents tended to his advantage, as he could consistently point
to them in proof of his unquestionable commercial honourableness, and in this
way many persons of all classes, not only in Canton, or in the Province, but
all over the Empire, would unhesitatingly entrust money to be placed in
undertakings which he had purchased and was willing to describe as “of
much good.” A certain class of printed leaves—those in which
Chang-ch’un did not insert purchased mentions of his forthcoming ventures
or verses recording his virtues (in return for buying many examples of the
printed leaf containing them)—took frequent occasion of reminding persons
that Chang-ch’un owed the beginning of his prosperity to finding a
written parchment connected with a Mandarin of exalted rank and a low caste
attendant at the Ti-i tea-house among the paper heaps, which it was at that
time his occupation to assort into various departments according to their
quality and commercial value. Such printed leaves freely and unhesitatingly
predicted that the day on which he would publicly lose face was incomparably
nearer than that on which the Imperial army would receive its back pay, and in
a quaint and gravity-removing manner advised him to protect himself against an
obscure but inevitable poverty by learning the accomplishment of
chair-carrying—an occupation for which his talents and achievements
fitted him in a high degree, they remarked.</p>
<p>In spite of these evilly intentioned remarks, and of illustrations representing
him as being bowstrung for treacherous killing, being seized in the action of
secretly conveying money from passers-by to himself and other similar annoying
references to his private life, Chang-ch’un did not fail to prosper, and
his undertakings succeeded to such an extent that without inquiry into the
detail many persons were content to describe as “gold-lined”
anything to which he affixed his sign, and to hazard their savings for staking
upon the ventures. In all other departments of life Chang was equally
successful; his chief wife was the daughter of one who stood high in the
Emperor’s favour; his repast table was never unsupplied with sea-snails,
rats’ tongues, or delicacies of an equally expensive nature, and it was
confidently maintained that there was no official in Canton, not even putting
aside the Taotai, who dare neglect to fondle Chang’s hand if he publicly
offered it to him for that purpose.</p>
<p>It was at the most illustrious point of his existence—at the time,
indeed, when after purchasing without money the renowned and proficient
charm-water Ho-Ko for a million taels, he had sold it again for ten—that
Chang was informed by his brother of the circumstances connected with Ling.
After becoming specially assured that the matter was indeed such as it was
represented to be, Chang at once discerned that the venture was of too certain
and profitable a nature to be put before those who entrusted their money to him
in ordinary and doubtful cases. He accordingly called together certain persons
whom he was desirous of obliging, and informing them privately and apart from
business terms that the opportunity was one of exceptional attractiveness, he
placed the facts before them. After displaying a number of diagrams bearing
upon the matter, he proposed that they should form an enterprise to be called
“The Ling (After Death) Without Much Risk Assembly.” The manner of
conducting this undertaking he explained to be as follows: The body of Ling,
whenever the spirit left it, should become as theirs to be used for profit. For
this benefit they would pay Ling fifty thousand taels when the understanding
was definitely arrived at, five thousand taels each year until the matter
ended, and when that period arrived another fifty thousand taels to persons
depending upon him during his life. Having stated the figure business,
Chang-ch’un put down his written papers, and causing his face to assume
the look of irrepressible but dignified satisfaction which it was his custom to
wear on most occasions, and especially when he had what appeared at first sight
to be evil news to communicate to public assemblages of those who had entrusted
money to his ventures, he proceeded to disclose the advantages of such a
system. At the extreme, he said, the amount which they would be required to pay
would be two hundred and fifty thousand taels; but this was in reality a very
misleading view of the circumstance, as he would endeavour to show them. For
one detail, he had allotted to Ling thirty years of existence, which was the
extreme amount according to the calculations of those skilled in such
prophecies; but, as they were all undoubtedly aware, persons of very expert
intellects were known to enjoy a much shorter period of life than the gross and
ordinary, and as Ling was clearly one of the former, by the fact of his
contriving so ingenious a method of enriching himself, they might with
reasonable foresight rely upon his departing when half the period had been
attained; in that way seventy-five thousand taels would be restored to them,
for every year represented a saving of five thousand. Another agreeable
contemplation was that of the last sum, for by such a time they would have
arrived at the most pleasurable part of the enterprise: a million taels’
worth of pure gold would be displayed before them, and the question of the
final fifty thousand could be disposed of by cutting off an arm or half a leg.
Whether they adopted that course, or decided to increase their fortunes by
exposing so exceptional and symmetrical a wonder to the public gaze in all the
principal cities of the Empire, was a circumstance which would have to be
examined within their minds when the time approached. In such a way the detail
of purchase stood revealed as only fifty thousand taels in reality, a sum so
despicably insignificant that he had internal pains at mentioning it to so
wealthy a group of Mandarins, and he had not yet made clear to them that each
year they would receive gold to the amount of almost a thousand taels. This
would be the result of Ling making smooth his surfaces, and it would enable
them to know that the person in question actually existed, and to keep the
circumstances before their intellects.</p>
<p>When Chang-Ch’un had made the various facts clear to this extent, those
who were assembled expressed their feelings as favourably turned towards the
project, provided the tests to which Ling was to be put should prove
encouraging, and a secure and intelligent understanding of things to be done
and not to be done could be arrived at between them. To this end Ling was
brought into the chamber, and fixing his thoughts steadfastly upon Mian, he
permitted portions to be cut from various parts of his body without betraying
any signs of ignoble agitation. No sooner had the pieces been separated and the
virtue of Ling’s existence passed from them than they changed colour and
hardened, nor could the most delicate and searching trials to which they were
exposed by a skilful worker in metals, who was obtained for the purpose,
disclose any particular, however minute, in which they differed from the finest
gold. The hair, the nails, and the teeth were similarly affected, and even
Ling’s blood dried into a fine gold powder. This detail of the trial
being successfully completed, Ling subjected himself to intricate questioning
on all matters connected with his religion and manner of conducting himself,
both in public and privately, the history and behaviour of his ancestors, the
various omens and remarkable sayings which had reference to his life and
destiny, and the intentions which he then possessed regarding his future
movements and habits of living. All the wise sayings and written and printed
leaves which made any allusion to the existence of and possibility of discovery
of the wonderful gold fluid were closely examined, and found to be in
agreement, whereupon those present made no further delay in admitting that the
facts were indeed as they had been described, and indulged in a dignified
stroking of each other’s faces as an expression of pleasure and in proof
of their satisfaction at taking part in so entrancing and remunerative an
affair. At Chang’s command many rare and expensive wines were then
brought in, and partaken of without restraint by all persons, the repast being
lightened by numerous well-considered and gravity-removing jests having
reference to Ling and the unusual composition of his person. So amiably were
the hours occupied that it was past the time of no light when Chang rose and
read at full length the statement of things to be done and things not to be
done, which was to be sealed by Ling for his part and the other persons who
were present for theirs. It so happened, however, that at that period
Ling’s mind was filled with brilliant and versatile thoughts and images
of Mian, and many-hued visions of the manner in which they would spend the
entrancing future which was now before them, and in this way it chanced that he
did not give any portion of his intellect to the reading, mistaking it, indeed,
for a delicate and very ably-composed set of verses which Chang-ch’un was
reciting as a formal blessing on parting. Nor was it until he was desired to
affix his sign that Ling discovered his mistake, and being of too respectful
and unobtrusive a disposition to require the matter to be repeated then, he
carried out the obligation without in any particular understanding the written
words to which he was agreeing.</p>
<p>As Ling walked through the streets to his chamber after leaving the house and
company of Chang-Ch’un, holding firmly among his garments the thin
printed papers to the amount of fifty thousand taels which he had received, and
repeatedly speaking to himself in terms of general and specific encouragement
at the fortunate events of the past few days, he became aware that a person of
mean and rapacious appearance, whom he had some memory of having observed
within the residence he had but just left, was continually by his side. Not at
first doubting that the circumstance resulted from a benevolent desire on the
part of Chang-ch’un that he should be protected on his passage through
the city, Ling affected not to observe the incident; but upon reaching his own
door the person in question persistently endeavoured to pass in also. Forming a
fresh judgment about the matter, Ling, who was very powerfully constructed, and
whose natural instincts were enhanced in every degree by the potent fluid of
which he had lately partaken, repeatedly threw him across the street until he
became weary of the diversion. At length, however, the thought arose that one
who patiently submitted to continually striking the opposite houses with his
head must have something of importance to communicate, whereupon he courteously
invited him to enter the apartment and unweigh his mind.</p>
<p>“The facts of the case appear to have been somewhat inadequately
represented,” said the stranger, bowing obsequiously, “for this
unornamental person was assured by the benignant Chang-ch’un that the one
whose shadow he was to become was of a mild and forbearing nature.”</p>
<p>“Such words are as the conversation of birds to me,” replied Ling,
not conjecturing how the matter had fallen about. “This person has just
left the presence of the elegant and successful Chang-ch’un, and no word
that he spoke gave indication of such a follower or such a service.”</p>
<p>“Then it is indeed certain that the various transactions have not been
fully understood,” exclaimed the other, “for the exact
communication to this unseemly one was, ‘The valuable and enlightened
Ling has heard and agreed to the different things to be done and not to be
done, one phrase of which arranges for your continual presence, so that he will
anticipate your attentions.’”</p>
<p>At these words the truth became as daylight before Ling’s eyes, and he
perceived that the written paper to which he had affixed his sign contained the
detail of such an office as that of the person before him. When too late, more
than ever did he regret that he had not formed some pretext for causing the
document to be read a second time, as in view of his immediate intentions such
an arrangement as the one to which he had agreed had every appearance of
becoming of an irksome and perplexing nature. Desiring to know the length of
the attendant’s commands, Ling asked him for a clear statement of his
duties, feigning that he had missed that portion of the reading through a
momentary attack of the giddy sickness. To this request the stranger, who
explained that his name was Wang, instantly replied that his written and spoken
orders were: never to permit more than an arm’s length of space to
separate them; to prevent, by whatever force was necessary for the purpose, all
attempts at evading the things to be done and not to be done, and to ignore as
of no interest all other circumstances. It seemed to Ling, in consequence, that
little seclusion would be enjoyed unless an arrangement could be effected
between Wang and himself; so to this end, after noticing the evident poverty
and covetousness of the person in question, he made him an honourable offer of
frequent rewards, provided a greater distance was allowed to come between them
as soon as Si-chow was reached. On his side, Ling undertook not to break
through the wording of the things to be done and not to be done, and to notify
to Wang any movements upon which he meditated. In this reputable manner the
obstacle was ingeniously removed, and the intelligent nature of the device was
clearly proved by the fact that not only Ling but Wang also had in the future a
much greater liberty of action than would have been possible if it had been
necessary to observe the short-sighted and evidently hastily-thought-of
condition which Chang-ch’un had endeavoured to impose.</p>
<h3>CHAPTER XIII</h3>
<p>In spite of his natural desire to return to Mian as quickly as possible, Ling
judged it expedient to give several days to the occupation of purchasing
apparel of the richest kinds, weapons and armour in large quantities, jewels
and ornaments of worked metals and other objects to indicate his changed
position. Nor did he neglect actions of a pious and charitable nature, for
almost his first care was to arrange with the chief ones at the Temple of
Benevolent Intentions that each year, on the day corresponding to that on which
he drank the gold fluid, a sumptuous and well-constructed coffin should be
presented to the most deserving poor and aged person within that quarter of the
city in which he had resided. When these preparations were completed, Ling set
out with an extensive train of attendants; but riding on before, accompanied
only by Wang, he quickly reached Si-chow without adventure.</p>
<p>The meeting between Ling and Mian was affecting to such an extent that the
blind and deaf attendants wept openly without reproach, notwithstanding the
fact that neither could become possessed of more than a half of the occurrence.
Eagerly the two reunited ones examined each other’s features to discover
whether the separation had brought about any change in the beloved and
well-remembered lines. Ling discovered upon Mian the shadow of an anxious care
at his absence, while the disappointments and trials which Ling had experienced
in Canton had left traces which were plainly visible to Mian’s
penetrating gaze. In such an entrancing occupation the time was to them without
hours until a feeling of hunger recalled them to lesser matters, when a variety
of very select foods and liquids was placed before them without delay. After
this elegant repast had been partaken of, Mian, supporting herself upon
Ling’s shoulder, made a request that he would disclose to her all the
matters which had come under his observation both within the city and during
his journey to and from that place. Upon this encouragement, Ling proceeded to
unfold his mind, not withholding anything which appeared to be of interest, no
matter how slight. When he had reached Canton without any perilous adventure,
Mian breathed more freely; as he recorded the interview at the Office of
Warlike Deeds and Arrangements, she trembled at the insidious malignity of the
evil person Li Keen. The conversation with the wise reader of the future
concerning the various states of such as be officially dead almost threw her
into the rigid sickness, from which, however, the wonderful circumstance of the
discovered properties of the gold fluid quickly recalled her. But to
Ling’s great astonishment no sooner had he made plain the exceptional
advantages which he had derived from the circumstances, and the nature of the
undertaking at which he had arrived with Chang-ch’un, than she became a
prey to the most intolerable and unrestrained anguish.</p>
<p>“Oh, my devoted but excessively ill-advised lover,” she exclaimed
wildly, and in tones which clearly indicated that she was inspired by every
variety of affectionate emotion, “has the unendurable position in which
you and all your household will be placed by the degrading commercial schemes
and instincts of the mercenary-souled person Chang-ch’un occupied no
place in your generally well-regulated intellect? Inevitably will those who
drink our almond tea, in order to have an opportunity of judging the value of
the appointments of the house, pass the jesting remark that while the Lings
assuredly have ‘a dead person’s bones in the secret chamber,’
at the present they will not have one in the family graveyard by reason of the
death of Ling himself. Better to lose a thousand limbs during life than the
entire person after death; nor would your adoring Mian hesitate to clasp
proudly to her organ of affection the veriest trunk that had parted with all
its attributes in a noble and sacrificing endeavour to preserve at least some
dignified proportions to embellish the Ancestral Temple and to receive the
worship of posterity.”</p>
<p>“Alas!” replied Ling, with extravagant humiliation, “it is
indeed true; and this person is degraded beyond the common lot of those who
break images and commit thefts from sacred places. The side of the transaction
which is at present engaging our attention never occurred to this superficial
individual until now.”</p>
<p>“Wise and incomparable one,” said Mian, in no degree able to
restrain the fountains of bitter water which clouded her delicate and
expressive eyes, “in spite of this person’s biting and ungracious
words do not, she makes a formal petition, doubt the deathless strength of her
affection. Cheerfully, in order to avert the matter in question, or even to
save her lover the anguish of unavailing and soul-eating remorse, would she
consign herself to a badly-constructed and slow-consuming fire or expose her
body to various undignified tortures. Happy are those even to whom is left a
little ash to be placed in a precious urn and diligently guarded, for it, in
any event, truly represents all that is left of the once living person, whereas
after an honourable and spotless existence my illustrious but unthinking lord
will be blended with a variety of baser substances and passed from hand to
hand, his immaculate organs serving to reward murderers for their deeds and to
tempt the weak and vicious to all manner of unmentionable crimes.”</p>
<p>So overcome was Ling by the distressing nature of the oversight he had
permitted that he could find no words with which to comfort Mian, who, after
some moments, continued:</p>
<p>“There are even worse visions of degradation which occur to this person.
By chance, that which was once the noble-minded Ling may be disposed of, not to
the Imperial Treasury for converting into pieces of exchange, but to some
undiscriminating worker in metals who will fashion out of his beautiful and
symmetrical stomach an elegant food-dish, so that from the ultimate
developments of the circumstance may arise the fact that his own descendants,
instead of worshipping him, use his internal organs for this doubtful if not
absolutely unclean purpose, and thereby suffer numerous well-merited
afflictions, to the end that the finally-despised Ling and this discredited
person, instead of founding a vigorous and prolific generation, become the
parents of a line of feeble-minded and physically-depressed lepers.”</p>
<p>“Oh, my peacock-eyed one!” exclaimed Ling, in immeasurable
distress, “so proficient an exhibition of virtuous grief crushes this
misguided person completely to the ground. Rather would he uncomplainingly lose
his pigtail than—”</p>
<p>“Such a course,” said a discordant voice, as the unpresentable
person Wang stepped forth from behind a hanging curtain, where, indeed, he had
stood concealed during the entire conversation, “is especially forbidden
by the twenty-third detail of the things to be done and not to be done.”</p>
<p>“What new adversity is this?” cried Mian, pressing to Ling with a
still closer embrace. “Having disposed of your incomparable body after
death, surely an adequate amount of liberty and seclusion remains to us during
life.”</p>
<p>“Nevertheless,” interposed the dog-like Wang, “the refined
person in question must not attempt to lose or to dispose of his striking and
invaluable pigtail; for by such an action he would be breaking through his
spoken and written word whereby he undertook to be ruled by the things to be
done and not to be done; and he would also be robbing the ingenious-minded
Chang-ch’un.”</p>
<p>“Alas!” lamented the unhappy Ling, “that which appeared to be
the end of all this person’s troubles is obviously simply the
commencement of a new and more extensive variety. Understand, O conscientious
but exceedingly inopportune Wang, that the words which passed from this
person’s mouth did not indicate a fixed determination, but merely served
to show the unfeigned depth of his emotion. Be content that he has no intention
of evading the definite principles of the things to be done and not to be done,
and in the meantime honour this commonplace establishment by retiring to the
hot and ill-ventilated chamber, and there partaking of a suitable repast which
shall be prepared without delay.”</p>
<p>When Wang had departed, which he did with somewhat unseemly haste, Ling made an
end of recording his narrative, which Mian’s grief had interrupted. In
this way he explained to her the reason of Wang’s presence, and assured
her that by reason of the arrangement he had made with that person, his near
existence would not be so unsupportable to them as might at first appear to be
the case.</p>
<p>While they were still conversing together, and endeavouring to divert their
minds from the objectionable facts which had recently come within their notice,
an attendant entered and disclosed that the train of servants and merchandise
which Ling had preceded on the journey was arriving. At this fresh example of
her lover’s consistent thought for her, Mian almost forgot her recent
agitation, and eagerly lending herself to the entrancing occupation of
unfolding and displaying the various objects, her brow finally lost the last
trace of sadness. Greatly beyond the imaginings of anticipation were the
expensive articles with which Ling proudly surrounded her; and in examining and
learning the cost of the set jewels and worked metals, the ornamental garments
for both persons, the wood and paper appointments for the house—even
incenses, perfumes, spices and rare viands had not been forgotten—the day
was quickly and profitably spent.</p>
<p>When the hour of sunset arrived, Ling, having learned that certain preparations
which he had commanded were fully carried out, took Mian by the hand and led
her into the chief apartment of the house, where were assembled all the
followers and attendants, even down to the illiterate and superfluous Wang. In
the centre of the room upon a table of the finest ebony stood a vessel of
burning incense, some dishes of the most highly-esteemed fruit, and an
abundance of old and very sweet wine. Before these emblems Ling and Mian placed
themselves in an attitude of deep humiliation, and formally expressed their
gratitude to the Chief Deity for having called them into existence, to the
cultivated earth for supplying them with the means of sustaining life, to the
Emperor for providing the numerous safeguards by which their persons were
protected at all times, and to their parents for educating them. This adequate
ceremony being completed, Ling explicitly desired all those present to observe
the fact that the two persons in question were, by that fact and from that
time, made as one being, and the bond between them, incapable of severance.</p>
<p>When the ruling night-lantern came out from among the clouds, Ling and Mian
became possessed of a great desire to go forth with pressed hands and look
again on the forest paths and glades in which they had spent many hours of
exceptional happiness before Ling’s journey to Canton. Leaving the
attendants to continue the feasting and drum-beating in a completely
unrestrained manner, they therefore passed out unperceived, and wandering among
the trees, presently stood on the banks of the Heng-Kiang.</p>
<p>“Oh, my beloved!” exclaimed Mian, gazing at the brilliant and
unruffled water, “greatly would this person esteem a short river journey,
such as we often enjoyed together in the days when you were recovering.”</p>
<p>Ling, to whom the expressed desires of Mian were as the word of the Emperor,
instantly prepared the small and ornamental junk which was fastened near for
this purpose, and was about to step in, when a presumptuous and highly
objectionable hand restrained him.</p>
<p>“Behold,” remarked a voice which Ling had some difficulty in
ascribing to any known person, so greatly had it changed from its usual tone,
“behold how the immature and altogether too-inferior Ling observes his
spoken and written assertions!”</p>
<p>At this low-conditioned speech, Ling drew his well-tempered sword without
further thought, in spite of the restraining arms of Mian, but at the sight of
the utterly incapable person Wang, who stood near smiling meaninglessly and
waving his arms with a continuous and backward motion, he again replaced it.</p>
<p>“Such remarks can be left to fall unheeded from the lips of one who bears
every indication of being steeped in rice spirit,” he said with
unprovoked dignity.</p>
<p>“It will be the plain duty of this expert and uncorruptible person to
furnish the unnecessary, but, nevertheless, very severe and self-opinionated
Chang-ch’un with a written account of how the traitorous and deceptive
Ling has endeavoured to break through the thirty-fourth vessel of the liquids
to be consumed and not to be consumed,” continued Wang with increased
deliberation and an entire absence of attention to Ling’s action and
speech, “and how by this refined person’s unfailing civility and
resourceful strategy he has been frustrated.”</p>
<p>“Perchance,” said Ling, after examining his thoughts for a short
space, and reflecting that the list of things to be done and not to be done was
to him as a blank leaf, “there may even be some small portion of that
which is accurate in his statement. In what manner,” he continued,
addressing the really unendurable person, who was by this time preparing to
pass the night in the cool swamp by the river’s edge, “does this
one endanger any detail of the written and sealed parchment by such an
action?”</p>
<p>“Inasmuch,” replied Wang, pausing in the process of removing his
outer garments, “as the seventy-ninth—the intricate name given to
it escapes this person’s tongue at the moment—but the
ninety-seventh—experLingknowswhamean—provides that any person, with
or without, attempting or not avoiding to travel by sea, lake, or river, or to
place himself in such a position as he may reasonably and intelligently be
drowned in salt water, fresh water, or—or honourable rice spirit, shall
be guilty of, and suffer—complete loss of memory.” With these words
the immoderate and contemptible person sank down in a very profound slumber.</p>
<p>“Alas!” said Ling, turning to Mian, who stood near, unable to
retire even had she desired, by reason of the extreme agitation into which the
incident had thrown her delicate mind and body, “how intensely
aggravating a circumstance that we are compelled to entertain so dissolute a
one by reason of this person’s preoccupation when the matter was read.
Nevertheless, it is not unlikely that the detail he spoke of was such as he
insisted, to the extent of making it a thing not to be done to journey in any
manner by water. It shall be an early endeavour of this person to get these
restraining details equitably amended; but in the meantime we will retrace our
footsteps through the wood, and the enraptured Ling will make a
well-thought-out attempt to lighten the passage by a recital of his
recently-composed verses on the subject of ‘Exile from the Loved One; or,
Farewell and Return.’”</p>
<h3>CHAPTER XIV</h3>
<p>“My beloved lord!” said Mian sadly, on a morning after many days
had passed since the return of Ling, “have you not every possession for
which the heart of a wise person searches? Yet the dark mark is scarcely ever
absent from your symmetrical brow. If she who stands before you, and is
henceforth an integral part of your organization, has failed you in any
particular, no matter how unimportant, explain the matter to her, and the
amendment will be a speedy and a joyful task.”</p>
<p>It was indeed true that Ling’s mind was troubled, but the fault did not
lie with Mian, as the person in question was fully aware, for before her eyes
as before those of Ling the unevadable compact which had been entered into with
Chang-ch’un was ever present, insidiously planting bitterness within even
the most select and accomplished delights. Nor with increasing time did the
obstinate and intrusive person Wang become more dignified in his behaviour; on
the contrary, he freely made use of his position to indulge in every variety of
abandonment, and almost each day he prevented, by reason of his knowledge of
the things to be done and not to be done, some refined and permissible
entertainment upon which Ling and Mian had determined. Ling had despatched many
communications upon this subject to Chang-ch’un, praying also that some
expert way out of the annoyance of the lesser and more unimportant things not
to be done should be arrived at, but the time when he might reasonably expect
an answer to these written papers had not yet arrived.</p>
<p>It was about this period that intelligence was brought to Ling from the
villages on the road to Peking, how Li Keen, having secretly ascertained that
his Yamen was standing and his goods uninjured, had determined to return, and
was indeed at that hour within a hundred li of Si-chow. Furthermore, he had
repeatedly been understood to pronounce clearly that he considered Ling to be
the head and beginning of all his inconveniences, and to declare that the first
act of justice which he should accomplish on his return would be to submit the
person in question to the most unbearable tortures, and then cause him to lose
his head publicly as an outrager of the settled state of things and an enemy of
those who loved tranquillity. Not doubting that Li Keen would endeavour to gain
an advantage by treachery if the chance presented itself, Ling determined to go
forth to meet him, and without delay settle the entire disturbance in one
well-chosen and fatally-destructive encounter. To this end, rather than disturb
the placid mind of Mian, to whom the thought of the engagement would be
weighted with many disquieting fears, he gave out that he was going upon an
expedition to surprise and capture certain fish of a very delicate flavour, and
attended by only two persons, he set forth in the early part of the day.</p>
<p>Some hours later, owing to an ill-considered remark on the part of the deaf
attendant, to whom the matter had been explained in an imperfect light, Mian
became possessed of the true facts of the case, and immediately all the
pleasure of existence went from her. She despaired of ever again beholding Ling
in an ordinary state, and mournfully reproached herself for the bitter words
which had risen to her lips when the circumstance of his condition and the
arrangement with Chang-ch’un first became known to her. After spending an
interval in a polished lament at the manner in which things were inevitably
tending, the thought occurred to Mian whether by any means in her power she
could influence the course and settled method of affairs. In this situation the
memory of the person Wang, and the fact that on several occasions he had made
himself objectionable when Ling had proposed to place himself in such a
position that he incurred some very remote chance of death by drowning or by
fire, recurred to her. Subduing the natural and pure-minded repulsion which she
invariably experienced at the mere thought of so debased an individual, she
sought for him, and discovering him in the act of constructing cardboard
figures of men and animals, which it was his custom to dispose skilfully in
little-frequented paths for the purpose of enjoying the sudden terror of those
who passed by, she quickly put the matter before him, urging him, by some
means, to prevent the encounter, which must assuredly cost the life of the one
whom he had so often previously obstructed from incurring the slightest risk.</p>
<p>“By no means,” exclaimed Wang, when he at length understood the
full meaning of the project; “it would be a most unpresentable action for
this commonplace person to interfere in so honourable an undertaking. Had the
priceless body of the intrepid Ling been in any danger of disappearing, as, for
example, by drowning or being consumed in fire, the nature of the circumstance
would have been different. As the matter exists, however, there is every
appearance that the far-seeing Chang-ch’un will soon reap the deserved
reward of his somewhat speculative enterprise, and to that end this person will
immediately procure a wooden barrier and the services of four robust carriers,
and proceed to the scene of the conflict.”</p>
<p>Deprived of even this hope of preventing the encounter, Mian betook herself in
extreme dejection to the secret room of the magician, which had been unopened
since the day when the two attendants had searched for substances to apply to
their master, and there she diligently examined every object in the remote
chance of discovering something which might prove of value in averting the
matter in question.</p>
<p>Not anticipating that the true reason of his journey would become known to
Mian, Ling continued on his way without haste, and passing through Si-chow
before the sun had risen, entered upon the great road to Peking. At a
convenient distance from the town he came to a favourable piece of ground where
he decided to await the arrival of Li Keen, spending the time profitably in
polishing his already brilliant sword, and making observations upon the nature
of the spot and the condition of the surrounding omens, on which the success of
his expedition would largely depend.</p>
<p>As the sun reached the highest point in the open sky the sound of an
approaching company could be plainly heard; but at the moment when the chair of
the Mandarin appeared within the sight of those who waited, the great luminary,
upon which all portents depend directly or indirectly, changed to the colour of
new-drawn blood and began to sink towards the earth. Without any misgivings,
therefore, Ling disposed his two attendants in the wood, with instructions to
step forth and aid him if he should be attacked by overwhelming numbers, while
he himself remained in the way. As the chair approached, the Mandarin observed
a person standing alone, and thinking that it was one who, hearing of his
return, had come out of the town to honour him, he commanded the bearers to
pause. Thereupon, stepping up to the opening, Ling struck the deceptive and
incapable Li Keen on the cheek, at the same time crying in a full voice,
“Come forth, O traitorous and two-stomached Mandarin! for this person is
very desirous of assisting you in the fulfilment of your boastful words. Here
is a most irreproachable sword which will serve excellently to cut off this
person’s undignified head; here is a waistcord which can be tightened
around his breast, thereby producing excruciating pains over the entire
body.”</p>
<p>At the knowledge of who the one before him was, and when he heard the words
which unhesitatingly announced Ling’s fixed purpose, Li Keen first urged
the carriers to fall upon Ling and slay him, and then, perceiving that such a
course was exceedingly distasteful to their natural tendencies, to take up the
chair and save him by flight. But Ling in the meantime engaged their attention,
and fully explained to them the treacherous and unworthy conduct of Li Keen,
showing them how his death would be a just retribution for his ill-spent life,
and promising them each a considerable reward in addition to their arranged
payment when the matter in question had been accomplished. Becoming convinced
of the justice of Ling’s cause, they turned upon Li Keen, insisting that
he should at once attempt to carry out the ill-judged threats against Ling, of
which they were consistent witnesses, and announcing that, if he failed to do
so, they would certainly bear him themselves to a not far distant well of
stagnant water, and there gain the approbation of the good spirits by freeing
the land of so unnatural a monster.</p>
<p>Seeing only a dishonourable death on either side, Li Keen drew his sword, and
made use of every artifice of which he had knowledge in order to disarm Ling or
to take him at a disadvantage. In this he was unsuccessful, for Ling, who was
by nature a very expert sword-user, struck him repeatedly, until he at length
fell in an expiring condition, remarking with his last words that he had indeed
been a narrow-minded and extortionate person during his life, and that his
death was an enlightened act of celestial accuracy.</p>
<p>Directing Wang and his four hired persons, who had in the meantime arrived, to
give the body of the Mandarin an honourable burial in the deep of the wood,
Ling rewarded and dismissed the chairbearers, and without delay proceeded to
Si-chow, where he charitably distributed the goods and possessions of Li Keen
among the poor of the town. Having in this able and conscientious manner
completely proved the misleading nature of the disgraceful statements which the
Mandarin had spread abroad concerning him, Ling turned his footsteps towards
Mian, whose entrancing joy at his safe return was judged by both persons to be
a sufficient reward for the mental distress with which their separation had
been accompanied.</p>
<h3>CHAPTER XV</h3>
<p>After the departure of Ling from Canton, the commercial affairs of
Chang-ch’un began, from a secret and undetectable cause, to assume an
ill-regulated condition. No venture which he undertook maintained a profitable
attitude, so that many persons who in former times had been content to display
the printed papers setting forth his name and virtues in an easily-seen
position in their receiving-rooms, now placed themselves daily before his house
in order to accuse him of using their taels in ways which they themselves had
not sufficiently understood, and for the purpose of warning passers-by against
his inducements. It was in vain that Chang proposed new undertakings, each of
an infallibly more prosperous nature than those before; the persons who had
hitherto supported him were all entrusting their money to one named Pung Soo,
who required millions where Chang had been content with thousands, and who
persistently insisted on greeting the sacred Emperor as an equal.</p>
<p>In this unenviable state Chang’s mind continually returned to thoughts of
Ling, whose lifeless body would so opportunely serve to dispel the embarrassing
perplexities of existence which were settling thickly about him. Urged forward
by a variety of circumstances which placed him in an entirely different spirit
from the honourable bearing which he had formerly maintained, he now closely
examined all the papers connected with the matter, to discover whether he might
not be able to effect his purpose with an outward exhibition of law forms.
While engaged in this degrading occupation, a detail came to his notice which
caused him to become very amiably disposed and confident of success. Proceeding
with the matter, he caused a well-supported report to be spread about that Ling
was suffering from a wasting sickness, which, without in any measure shortening
his life, would cause him to return to the size and weight of a newly-born
child, and being by these means enabled to secure the entire matter of
“The Ling (After Death) Without Much Risk Assembly” at a very small
outlay, he did so, and then, calling together a company of those who hire
themselves out for purposes of violence, journeyed to Si-chow.</p>
<p>Ling and Mian were seated together at a table in the great room, examining a
vessel of some clear liquid, when Chang-ch’un entered with his armed
ones, in direct opposition to the general laws of ordinary conduct and the
rulings of hospitality. At the sight, which plainly indicated a threatened
display of violence, Ling seized his renowned sword, which was never far
distant from him, and prepared to carry out his spoken vow, that any person
overstepping a certain mark on the floor would assuredly fall.</p>
<p>“Put away your undoubtedly competent weapon, O Ling,” said Chang,
who was desirous that the matter should be arranged if possible without any
loss to himself, “for such a course can be honourably adopted when it is
taken into consideration that we are as twenty to one, and have, moreover, the
appearance of being inspired by law forms.”</p>
<p>“There are certain matters of allowed justice which over-rule all other
law forms,” replied Ling, taking a surer hold of his sword-grasp.
“Explain, for your part, O obviously double-dealing Chang-ch’un,
from whom this person only recently parted on terms of equality and courtesy,
why you come not with an agreeable face and a peaceful following, but with a
countenance which indicates both violence and terror, and accompanied by many
whom this person recognizes as the most outcast and degraded from the narrow
and evil-smelling ways of Canton?”</p>
<p>“In spite of your blustering words,” said Chang, with some attempt
at an exhibition of dignity, “this person is endowed by every right, and
comes only for the obtaining, by the help of this expert and proficient
gathering, should such a length become necessary, of his just claims.
Understand that in the time since the venture was arranged this person has
become possessed of all the property of ‘The Ling (After Death) Without
Much Risk Assembly,’ and thereby he is competent to act fully in the
matter. It has now come within his attention that the one Ling to whom the
particulars refer is officially dead, and as the written and sealed document
clearly undertook that the person’s body was to be delivered up for
whatever use the Assembly decided whenever death should possess it, this person
has now come for the honourable carrying out of the undertaking.”</p>
<p>At these words the true nature of the hidden contrivance into which he had
fallen descended upon Ling like a heavy and unavoidable thunderbolt.
Nevertheless, being by nature and by reason of his late exploits fearless of
death, except for the sake of the loved one by his side, he betrayed no sign of
discreditable emotion at the discovery.</p>
<p>“In such a case,” he replied, with an appearance of entirely
disregarding the danger of the position, “the complete parchment must be
of necessity overthrown; for if this person is now officially dead, he was
equally so at the time of sealing, and arrangements entered into by dead
persons have no actual existence.”</p>
<p>“That is a matter which has never been efficiently decided,”
admitted Chang-ch’un, with no appearance of being thrown into a state of
confusion at the suggestion, “and doubtless the case in question can by
various means be brought in the end before the Court of Final Settlement at
Peking, where it may indeed be judged in the manner you assert. But as such a
process must infallibly consume the wealth of a province and the years of an
ordinary lifetime, and as it is this person’s unmoved intention to carry
out his own view of the undertaking without delay, such speculations are not
matters of profound interest.”</p>
<p>Upon this Chang gave certain instructions to his followers, who thereupon
prepared to advance. Perceiving that the last detail of the affair had been
arrived at, Ling threw back his hanging garment, and was on the point of
rushing forward to meet them, when Mian, who had maintained a possessed and
reliant attitude throughout, pushed towards him the vessel of pure and
sparkling liquid with which they had been engaged when so presumptuously broken
in upon, at the same time speaking to him certain words in an outside language.
A new and Heaven-sent confidence immediately took possession of Ling, and
striking his sword against the wall with such irresistible force that the
entire chamber trembled and the feeble-minded assassins shrank back in
unrestrained terror, he leapt upon the table, grasping in one hand the open
vessel.</p>
<p>“Behold the end, O most uninventive and slow-witted
Chang-ch’un!” he cried in a dreadful and awe-compelling voice.
“As a reward for your faithless and traitorous behaviour, learn how such
avaricious-minded incompetence turns and fastens itself upon the vitals of
those who beget it. In spite of many things which were not of a graceful nature
towards him, this person has unassumingly maintained his part of the
undertaking, and would have followed such a course conscientiously to the last.
As it is, when he has made an end of speaking, the body which you are already
covetously estimating in taels will in no way be distinguishable from that of
the meanest and most ordinary maker of commercial ventures in Canton. For,
behold! the fluid which he holds in his hand, and which it is his fixed
intention to drain to the last drop, is in truth nothing but a secret and
exceedingly powerful counteractor against the virtues of the gold drug; and
though but a single particle passed his lips, and the swords of your brilliant
and versatile murderers met the next moment in his breast, the body which fell
at your feet would be meet for worms rather than for the melting-pot.”</p>
<p>It was indeed such a substance as Ling represented it to be, Mian having
discovered it during her very systematic examination of the dead
magician’s inner room. Its composition and distillation had involved that
self-opinionated person in many years of arduous toil, for with a somewhat
unintelligent lack of foresight he had obstinately determined to perfect the
antidote before he turned his attention to the drug itself. Had the matter been
more ingeniously arranged, he would undoubtedly have enjoyed an earlier triumph
and an affluent and respected old age.</p>
<p>At Ling’s earnest words and prepared attitude an instant conviction of
the truth of his assertions took possession of Chang. Therefore, seeing nothing
but immediate and unevadable ruin at the next step, he called out in a loud and
imploring voice that he should desist, and no harm would come upon him. To this
Ling consented, first insisting that the followers should be dismissed without
delay, and Chang alone remain to have conversation on the matter. By this just
act the lower parts of Canton were greatly purified, for the persons in
question being driven forth into the woods, mostly perished by encounters with
wild animals, or at the hands of the enraged villagers, to whom Ling had by
this time become greatly endeared.</p>
<p>When the usual state had been restored, Ling made clear to Chang the altered
nature of the conditions to which he would alone agree. “It is a
noble-minded and magnanimous proposal on your part, and one to which this
misguided person had no claim,” admitted Chang, as he affixed his seal to
the written undertaking and committed the former parchment to be consumed by
fire. By this arrangement it was agreed that Ling should receive only one-half
of the yearly payment which had formerly been promised, and that no sum of
taels should become due to those depending on him at his death. In return for
these valuable allowances, there were to exist no details of things to be done
and not to be done, Ling merely giving an honourable promise to observe the
matter in a just spirit, while—most esteemed of all—only a portion
of his body was to pass to Chang when the end arrived, the upper part remaining
to embellish the family altar and receive the veneration of posterity.</p>
<hr />
<p>As the great sky-lantern rose above the trees and the time of no-noise fell
upon the woods, a flower-laden pleasure-junk moved away from its restraining
cords, and, without any sense of motion, gently bore Ling and Mian between the
sweet-smelling banks of the Heng-Kiang. Presently Mian drew from beneath her
flowing garment an instrument of stringed wood, and touching it with a quick
but delicate stroke, like the flight and pausing of a butterfly, told in
well-balanced words a refined narrative of two illustrious and noble-looking
persons, and how, after many disagreeable evils and unendurable separations,
they entered upon a destined state of earthly prosperity and celestial favour.
When she made an end of the verses, Ling turned the junk’s head by one
well-directed stroke of the paddle, and prepared by using similar means to
return to the place of mooring.</p>
<p>“Indeed,” he remarked, ceasing for a moment to continue this
skilful occupation, “the words which you have just spoken might, without
injustice, be applied to the two persons who are now conversing together. For
after suffering misfortunes and wrongs beyond an appropriate portion, they have
now reached that period of existence when a tranquil and contemplative future
is assured to them. In this manner is the sage and matured utterance of the
inspired philosopher Nien-tsu again proved: that the life of every person is
largely composed of two varieties of circumstances which together build up his
existence—the Good and the Evil.”</p>
<p class="center">
THE END OF THE STORY OF LING</p>
<h3>CHAPTER XVI</h3>
<p>When Kai Lung, the story-teller, made an end of speaking, he was immediately
greeted with a variety of delicate and pleasing remarks, all persons who had
witnessed the matter, down even to the lowest type of Miaotze, who by reason of
their obscure circumstances had been unable to understand the meaning of a word
that had been spoken, maintaining that Kai Lung’s accomplishment of
continuing for upwards of three hours without a pause had afforded an
entertainment of a very high and refined order. While these polished sayings
were being composed, together with many others of a similar nature, Lin Yi
suddenly leapt to his feet with a variety of highly objectionable remarks
concerning the ancestors of all those who were present, and declaring that the
story of Ling was merely a well-considered stratagem to cause them to forget
the expedition which they had determined upon, for by that time it should have
been completely carried out. It was undoubtedly a fact that the hour spoken of
for the undertaking had long passed, Lin Yi having completely overlooked the
speed of time in his benevolent anxiety that the polite and valorous Ling
should in the end attain to a high and remunerative destiny.</p>
<p>In spite of Kai Lung’s consistent denials of any treachery, he could not
but be aware that the incident tended greatly to his disadvantage in the eyes
of those whom he had fixed a desire to conciliate, nor did his well-intentioned
offer that he would without hesitation repeat the display for a like number of
hours effect his amiable purpose. How the complication would finally have been
determined without interruption is a matter merely of imagination, for at that
moment an outpost, who had been engaged in guarding the secrecy of the
expedition, threw himself into the enclosure in a torn and breathless
condition, having run through the forest many li in a winding direction for the
explicit purpose of warning Lin Yi that his intentions had become known, and
that he and his followers would undoubtedly be surprised and overcome if they
left the camp.</p>
<p>At this intimation of the eminent service which Kai Lung had rendered them, the
nature of their faces towards him at once changed completely, those who only a
moment before had been demanding his death particularly hailing him as their
inspired and unobtrusive protector, and in all probability, indeed, a virtuous
and benignant spirit in disguise.</p>
<p>Bending under the weight of offerings which Lin Yi and his followers pressed
upon him, together with many clearly set out desires for his future prosperity,
and assured of their unalterable protection on all future occasions, Kai Lung
again turned his face towards the lanterns of Knei Yang. Far down the side of
the mountain they followed his footsteps, now by a rolling stone, now by a
snapping branch of yellow pine. Once again they heard his voice, cheerfully
repeating to himself; “Among the highest virtues of a pure
existence—” But beyond that point the gentle forest breath bore him
away.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="link2HCH0002" id="link2HCH0002"></SPAN> II.<br/> THE STORY OF YUNG CHANG</h2>
<p class="center">
Narrated by Kai Lung, in the open space of the tea-shop of The Celestial
Principles, at Wu-whei.</p>
<p>“Ho, illustrious passers-by!” said Kai Lung, the story-teller, as
he spread out his embroidered mat under the mulberry-tree. “It is indeed
unlikely that you would condescend to stop and listen to the foolish words of
such an insignificant and altogether deformed person as myself. Nevertheless,
if you will but retard your elegant footsteps for a few moments, this
exceedingly unprepossessing individual will endeavour to entertain you with the
recital of the adventures of the noble Yung Chang, as recorded by the
celebrated Pe-ku-hi.”</p>
<p>Thus adjured, the more leisurely-minded drew near to hear the history of Yung
Chang. There was Sing You the fruit-seller, and Li Ton-ti the wood-carver; Hi
Seng left his clients to cry in vain for water; and Wang Yu, the idle
pipe-maker, closed his shop of “The Fountain of Beauty,” and hung
on the shutter the gilt dragon to keep away customers in his absence. These,
together with a few more shopkeepers and a dozen or so loafers, constituted a
respectable audience by the time Kai Lung was ready.</p>
<p>“It would be more seemly if this ill-conditioned person who is now
addressing such a distinguished assembly were to reward his fine and
noble-looking hearers for their trouble,” apologized the story-teller.
“But, as the Book of Verses says, ‘The meaner the slave, the
greater the lord’; and it is, therefore, not unlikely that this majestic
concourse will reward the despicable efforts of their servant by handfuls of
coins till the air appears as though filled with swarms of locusts in the
season of much heat. In particular, there is among this august crowd of
Mandarins one Wang Yu, who has departed on three previous occasions without
bestowing the reward of a single cash. If the feeble and covetous-minded Wang
Yu will place within this very ordinary bowl the price of one of his
exceedingly ill-made pipes, this unworthy person will proceed.”</p>
<p>“Vast chasms can be filled, but the heart of man never,” quoted the
pipe-maker in retort. “Oh, most incapable of story-tellers, have you not
on two separate occasions slept beneath my utterly inadequate roof without
payment?”</p>
<p>But he, nevertheless, deposited three cash in the bowl, and drew nearer among
the front row of the listeners.</p>
<p>“It was during the reign of the enlightened Emperor Tsing Nung,”
began Kai Lung, without further introduction, “that there lived at a
village near Honan a wealthy and avaricious maker of idols, named Ti Hung. So
skilful had he become in the making of clay idols that his fame had spread for
many li round, and idol-sellers from all the neighbouring villages, and even
from the towns, came to him for their stock. No other idol-maker between Honan
and Nanking employed so many clay-gatherers or so many modellers; yet, with all
his riches, his avarice increased till at length he employed men whom he called
‘agents’ and ‘travellers,’ who went from house to house
selling his idols and extolling his virtues in verses composed by the most
illustrious poets of the day. He did this in order that he might turn into his
own pocket the full price of the idols, grudging those who would otherwise have
sold them the few cash which they would make. Owing to this he had many
enemies, and his army of travellers made him still more; for they were more
rapacious than the scorpion, and more obstinate than the ox. Indeed, there is
still the proverb, ‘With honey it is possible to soften the heart of the
he-goat; but a blow from an iron cleaver is taken as a mark of welcome by an
agent of Ti Hung.’ So that people barred the doors at their approach, and
even hung out signs of death and mourning.</p>
<p>“Now, among all his travellers there was none more successful, more
abandoned, and more valuable to Ti Hung than Li Ting. So depraved was Li Ting
that he was never known to visit the tombs of his ancestors; indeed, it was
said that he had been heard to mock their venerable memories, and that he had
jestingly offered to sell them to anyone who should chance to be without
ancestors of his own. This objectionable person would call at the houses of the
most illustrious Mandarins, and would command the slaves to carry to their
masters his tablets, on which were inscribed his name and his virtues. Reaching
their presence, he would salute them with the greeting of an equal, ‘How
is your stomach?’ and then proceed to exhibit samples of his wares,
greatly overrating their value. ‘Behold!’ he would exclaim,
‘is not this elegantly-moulded idol worthy of the place of honour in this
sumptuous mansion which my presence defiles to such an extent that twelve
basins of rose-water will not remove the stain? Are not its eyes more delicate
than the most select of almonds? and is not its stomach rounder than the
cupolas upon the high temple at Peking? Yet, in spite of its perfections, it is
not worthy of the acceptance of so distinguished a Mandarin, and therefore I
will accept in return the quarter-tael, which, indeed, is less than my
illustrious master gives for the clay alone.’</p>
<p>“In this manner Li Ting disposed of many idols at high rates, and thereby
endeared himself so much to the avaricious heart of Ti Hung that he promised
him his beautiful daughter Ning in marriage.</p>
<p>“Ning was indeed very lovely. Her eyelashes were like the finest willow
twigs that grow in the marshes by the Yang-tse-Kiang; her cheeks were fairer
than poppies; and when she bathed in the Hoang Ho, her body seemed transparent.
Her brow was finer than the most polished jade; while she seemed to walk, like
a winged bird, without weight, her hair floating in a cloud. Indeed, she was
the most beautiful creature that has ever existed.”</p>
<p>“Now may you grow thin and shrivel up like a fallen lemon; but it is
false!” cried Wang Yu, starting up suddenly and unexpectedly. “At
Chee Chou, at the shop of ‘The Heaven-sent Sugar-cane,’ there lives
a beautiful and virtuous girl who is more than all that. Her eyes are like the
inside circles on the peacock’s feathers; her teeth are finer than the
scales on the Sacred Dragon; her—”</p>
<p>“If it is the wish of this illustriously-endowed gathering that this
exceedingly illiterate paper tiger should occupy their august moments with a
description of the deformities of the very ordinary young person at Chee
Chou,” said Kai Lung imperturbably, “then the remainder of the
history of the noble-minded Yung Chang can remain until an evil fate has
overtaken Wang Yu, as it assuredly will shortly.”</p>
<p>“A fair wind raises no storm,” said Wang Yu sulkily; and Kai Lung
continued:</p>
<p>“Such loveliness could not escape the evil eye of Li Ting, and
accordingly, as he grew in favour with Ti Hung, he obtained his consent to the
drawing up of the marriage contracts. More than this, he had already sent to
Ning two bracelets of the finest gold, tied together with a scarlet thread, as
a betrothal present. But, as the proverb says, ‘The good bee will not
touch the faded flower,’ and Ning, although compelled by the second of
the Five Great Principles to respect her father, was unable to regard the
marriage with anything but abhorrence. Perhaps this was not altogether the
fault of Li Ting, for on the evening of the day on which she had received his
present, she walked in the rice fields, and sitting down at the foot of a
funereal cypress, whose highest branches pierced the Middle Air, she cried
aloud:</p>
<p>“‘I cannot control my bitterness. Of what use is it that I should
be called the “White Pigeon among Golden Lilies,” if my beauty is
but for the hog-like eyes of the exceedingly objectionable Li Ting? Ah, Yung
Chang, my unfortunate lover! what evil spirit pursues you that you cannot pass
your examination for the second degree? My noble-minded but ambitious boy, why
were you not content with an agricultural or even a manufacturing career and
happiness? By aspiring to a literary degree, you have placed a barrier wider
than the Whang Hai between us.’</p>
<p>“‘As the earth seems small to the soaring swallow, so shall
insuperable obstacles be overcome by the heart worn smooth with a fixed
purpose,’ said a voice beside her, and Yung Chang stepped from behind the
cypress tree, where he had been waiting for Ning. ‘O one more symmetrical
than the chrysanthemum,’ he continued, ‘I shall yet, with the aid
of my ancestors, pass the second degree, and even obtain a position of high
trust in the public office at Peking.’</p>
<p>“‘And in the meantime,’ pouted Ning, ‘I shall have
partaken of the wedding-cake of the utterly unpresentable Li Ting.’ And
she exhibited the bracelets which she had that day received.</p>
<p>“‘Alas!’ said Yung Chang, ‘there are times when one is
tempted to doubt even the most efficacious and violent means. I had hoped that
by this time Li Ting would have come to a sudden and most unseemly end; for I
have drawn up and affixed in the most conspicuous places notifications of his
character, similar to the one here.’</p>
<p>“Ning turned, and beheld fastened to the trunk of the cypress an
exceedingly elegantly written and composed notice, which Yung read to her as
follows:</p>
<p class="center">
“‘BEWARE OF INCURRING DEATH FROM STARVATION</p>
<p>“‘Let the distinguished inhabitants of this district observe the
exceedingly ungraceful walk and bearing of the low person who calls himself Li
Ting. Truthfully, it is that of a dog in the act of being dragged to the river
because his sores and diseases render him objectionable in the house of his
master. So will this hunchbacked person be dragged to the place of execution,
and be bowstrung, to the great relief of all who respect the five senses; A
Respectful Physiognomy, Passionless Reflexion, Soft Speech, Acute Hearing,
Piercing Sight.</p>
<p>“‘He hopes to attain to the Red Button and the Peacock’s
Feather; but the right hand of the Deity itches, and Li Ting will assuredly be
removed suddenly.’</p>
<p class="p2">
“‘Li Ting must certainly be in league with the evil forces if he
can withstand so powerful a weapon,’ said Ning admiringly, when her lover
had finished reading. ‘Even now he is starting on a journey, nor will he
return till the first day of the month when the sparrows go to the sea and are
changed into oysters. Perhaps the fate will overtake him while he is away. If
not—’</p>
<p>“‘If not,’ said Yung, taking up her words as she paused,
‘then I have yet another hope. A moment ago you were regretting my choice
of a literary career. Learn, then, the value of knowledge. By its aid
(assisted, indeed, by the spirits of my ancestors) I have discovered a new and
strange thing, for which I can find no word. By using this new system of
reckoning, your illustrious but exceedingly narrow-minded and miserly father
would be able to make five taels where he now makes one. Would he not, in
consideration for this, consent to receive me as a son-in-law, and dismiss the
inelegant and unworthy Li Ting?’</p>
<p>“‘In the unlikely event of your being able to convince my
illustrious parent of what you say, it would assuredly be so,’ replied
Ning. ‘But in what way could you do so? My sublime and charitable father
already employs all the means in his power to reap the full reward of his
sacred industry. His “solid house-hold gods” are in reality mere
shells of clay; higher-priced images are correspondingly constructed, and his
clay gatherers and modellers are all paid on a “profit-sharing
system.” Nay, further, it is beyond likelihood that he should wish for
more purchasers, for so great is his fame that those who come to buy have
sometimes to wait for days in consequence of those before them; for my
exceedingly methodical sire entrusts none with the receiving of money, and the
exchanges are therefore made slowly. Frequently an unnaturally devout person
will require as many as a hundred idols, and so the greater part of the day
will be passed.’</p>
<p>“‘In what way?’ inquired Yung tremulously.</p>
<p>“‘Why, in order that the countings may not get mixed, of course; it
is necessary that when he has paid for one idol he should carry it to a place
aside, and then return and pay for the second, carrying it to the first, and in
such a manner to the end. In this way the sun sinks behind the
mountains.’</p>
<p>“‘But,’ said Yung, his voice thick with his great discovery,
‘if he could pay for the entire quantity at once, then it would take but
a hundredth part of the time, and so more idols could be sold.’</p>
<p>“‘How could this be done?’ inquired Ning wonderingly.
‘Surely it is impossible to conjecture the value of so many idols.’</p>
<p>“‘To the unlearned it would indeed be impossible,’ replied
Yung proudly, ‘but by the aid of my literary researches I have been
enabled to discover a process by which such results would be not a matter of
conjecture, but of certainty. These figures I have committed to tablets, which
I am prepared to give to your mercenary and slow-witted father in return for
your incomparable hand, a share of the profits, and the dismissal of the
uninventive and morally threadbare Li Ting.’</p>
<p>“‘When the earth-worm boasts of his elegant wings, the eagle can
afford to be silent,’ said a harsh voice behind them; and turning hastily
they beheld Li Ting, who had come upon them unawares. ‘Oh, most
insignificant of table-spoilers,’ he continued, ‘it is very evident
that much over-study has softened your usually well-educated brains. Were it
not that you are obviously mentally afflicted, I should unhesitatingly persuade
my beautiful and refined sword to introduce you to the spirits of your ignoble
ancestors. As it is, I will merely cut off your nose and your left ear, so that
people may not say that the Dragon of the Earth sleeps and wickedness goes
unpunished.’</p>
<p>“Both had already drawn their swords, and very soon the blows were so
hard and swift that, in the dusk of the evening, it seemed as though the air
were filled with innumerable and many-coloured fireworks. Each was a practised
swordsman, and there was no advantage gained on either side, when Ning, who had
fled on the appearance of Li Ting, reappeared, urging on her father, whose
usually leisurely footsteps were quickened by the dread that the duel must
surely result in certain loss to himself, either of a valuable servant, or of
the discovery which Ning had briefly explained to him, and of which he at once
saw the value.</p>
<p>“‘Oh, most distinguished and expert persons,’ he exclaimed
breathlessly, as soon as he was within hearing distance, ‘do not trouble
to give so marvellous an exhibition for the benefit of this unworthy
individual, who is the only observer of your illustrious dexterity! Indeed,
your honourable condescension so fills this illiterate person with shame that
his hearing is thereby preternaturally sharpened, and he can plainly
distinguish many voices from beyond the Hoang Ho, crying for the Heaven-sent
representative of the degraded Ti Hung to bring them more idols. Bend,
therefore, your refined footsteps in the direction of Poo Chow, O Li Ting, and
leave me to make myself objectionable to this exceptional young man with my
intolerable commonplaces.’</p>
<p>“‘The shadow falls in such a direction as the sun wills,’
said Li Ting, as he replaced his sword and departed.</p>
<p>“‘Yung Chang,’ said the merchant, ‘I am informed that
you have made a discovery that would be of great value to me, as it undoubtedly
would if it is all that you say. Let us discuss the matter without ceremony.
Can you prove to me that your system possesses the merit you claim for it? If
so, then the matter of arrangement will be easy.’</p>
<p>“‘I am convinced of the absolute certainty and accuracy of the
discovery,’ replied Yung Chang. ‘It is not as though it were an
ordinary matter of human intelligence, for this was discovered to me as I was
worshipping at the tomb of my ancestors. The method is regulated by a system of
squares, triangles, and cubes. But as the practical proof might be long, and as
I hesitate to keep your adorable daughter out in the damp night air, may I not
call at your inimitable dwelling in the morning, when we can go into the matter
thoroughly?’</p>
<p>“I will not weary this intelligent gathering, each member of which
doubtless knows all the books on mathematics off by heart, with a recital of
the means by which Yung Chang proved to Ti Hung the accuracy of his tables and
the value of his discovery of the multiplication table, which till then had
been undreamt of,” continued the story-teller. “It is sufficient to
know that he did so, and that Ti Hung agreed to his terms, only stipulating
that Li Ting should not be made aware of his dismissal until he had returned
and given in his accounts. The share of the profits that Yung was to receive
was cut down very low by Ti Hung, but the young man did not mind that, as he
would live with his father-in-law for the future.</p>
<p>“With the introduction of this new system, the business increased like a
river at flood-time. All rivals were left far behind, and Ti Hung put out this
sign:</p>
<p class="center">
“NO WAITING HERE!</p>
<p>“Good-morning! Have you worshipped one of Ti Hung’s refined
ninety-nine cash idols?</p>
<p>“Let the purchasers of ill-constructed idols at other establishments,
where they have grown old and venerable while waiting for the all-thumb
proprietors to count up to ten, come to the shop of Ti Hung and regain their
lost youth. Our ninety-nine cash idols are worth a tael a set. We do not,
however, claim that they will do everything. The ninety-nine cash idols of Ti
Hung will not, for example, purify linen, but even the most contented and
frozen-brained person cannot be happy until he possesses one. What is
happiness? The exceedingly well-educated Philosopher defines it as the
accomplishment of all our desires. Everyone desires one of the Ti Hung’s
ninety-nine cash idols, therefore get one; but be sure that it is Ti
Hung’s.</p>
<p>“Have you a bad idol? If so, dismiss it, and get one of Ti Hung’s
ninety-nine cash specimens.</p>
<p>“Why does your idol look old sooner than your neighbours? Because yours
is not one of Ti Hung’s ninety-nine cash marvels.</p>
<p>“They bring all delights to the old and the young, The elegant idols
supplied by Ti Hung.</p>
<p>“N.B.—The ‘Great Sacrifice’ idol, forty-five cash;
delivered, carriage free, in quantities of not less than twelve, at any temple,
on the evening before the sacrifice.</p>
<p class="p2">
“It was about this time that Li Ting returned. His journey had been more
than usually successful, and he was well satisfied in consequence. It was not
until he had made out his accounts and handed in his money that Ti Hung
informed him of his agreement with Yung Chang.</p>
<p>“‘Oh, most treacherous and excessively unpopular Ti Hung,’
exclaimed Li Ting, in a terrible voice, ‘this is the return you make for
all my entrancing efforts in your services, then? It is in this way that you
reward my exceedingly unconscientious recommendations of your very inferior and
unendurable clay idols, with their goggle eyes and concave stomachs! Before I
go, however, I request to be inspired to make the following remark—that I
confidently predict your ruin. And now this low and undignified person will
finally shake the elegant dust of your distinguished house from his thoroughly
inadequate feet, and proceed to offer his incapable services to the rival
establishment over the way.’</p>
<p>“‘The machinations of such an evilly-disposed person as Li Ting
will certainly be exceedingly subtle,’ said Ti Hung to his son-in-law
when the traveller had departed. ‘I must counteract his omens. Herewith I
wish to prophecy that henceforth I shall enjoy an unbroken run of good fortune.
I have spoken, and assuredly I shall not eat my words.’</p>
<p>“As the time went on, it seemed as though Ti Hung had indeed spoken
truly. The ease and celerity with which he transacted his business brought him
customers and dealers from more remote regions than ever, for they could spend
days on the journey and still save time. The army of clay-gatherers and
modellers grew larger and larger, and the work-sheds stretched almost down to
the river’s edge. Only one thing troubled Ti Hung, and that was the
uncongenial disposition of his son-in-law, for Yung took no further interest in
the industry to which his discovery had given so great an impetus, but
resolutely set to work again to pass his examination for the second degree.</p>
<p>“‘It is an exceedingly distinguished and honourable thing to have
failed thirty-five times, and still to be undiscouraged,’ admitted Ti
Hung; ‘but I cannot cleanse my throat from bitterness when I consider
that my noble and lucrative business must pass into the hands of strangers,
perhaps even into the possession of the unendurable Li Ting.’</p>
<p>“But it had been appointed that this degrading thing should not happen,
however, and it was indeed fortunate that Yung did not abandon his literary
pursuits; for after some time it became very apparent to Ti Hung that there was
something radically wrong with his business. It was not that his custom was
falling off in any way; indeed, it had lately increased in a manner that was
phenomenal, and when the merchant came to look into the matter, he found to his
astonishment that the least order he had received in the past week had been for
a hundred idols. All the sales had been large, and yet Ti Hung found himself
most unaccountably deficient in taels. He was puzzled and alarmed, and for the
next few days he looked into the business closely. Then it was that the reason
was revealed, both for the falling off in the receipts and for the increase in
the orders. The calculations of the unfortunate Yung Chang were correct up to a
hundred, but at that number he had made a gigantic error—which, however,
he was never able to detect and rectify—with the result that all
transactions above that point worked out at a considerable loss to the seller.
It was in vain that the panic-stricken Ti Hung goaded his miserable son-in-law
to correct the mistake; it was equally in vain that he tried to stem the
current of his enormous commercial popularity. He had competed for public
favour, and he had won it, and every day his business increased till ruin
grasped him by the pigtail. Then came an order from one firm at Peking for five
millions of the ninety-nine cash idols, and at that Ti Hung put up his
shutters, and sat down in the dust.</p>
<p>“‘Behold!’ he exclaimed, ‘in the course of a lifetime
there are many very disagreeable evils that may overtake a person. He may
offend the Sacred Dragon, and be in consequence reduced to a fine dry powder;
or he may incur the displeasure of the benevolent and pure-minded Emperor, and
be condemned to death by roasting; he may also be troubled by demons or by the
disturbed spirits of his ancestors, or be struck by thunderbolts. Indeed, there
are numerous annoyances, but they become as Heaven-sent blessings in comparison
to a self-opinionated and more than ordinarily weak-minded son-in-law. Of what
avail is it that I have habitually sold one idol for the value of a hundred?
The very objectionable man in possession sits in my delectable summer-house,
and the unavoidable legal documents settle around me like a flock of pigeons.
It is indeed necessary that I should declare myself to be in voluntary
liquidation, and make an assignment of my book debts for the benefit of my
creditors. Having accomplished this, I will proceed to the well-constructed
tomb of my illustrious ancestors, and having kow-towed at their incomparable
shrines, I will put an end to my distinguished troubles with this exceedingly
well-polished sword.’</p>
<p>“‘The wise man can adapt himself to circumstances as water takes
the shape of the vase that contains it,’ said the well-known voice of Li
Ting. ‘Let not the lion and the tiger fight at the bidding of the jackal.
By combining our forces all may be well with you yet. Assist me to dispose of
the entirely superfluous Yung Chang and to marry the elegant and symmetrical
Ning, and in return I will allot to you a portion of my not inconsiderable
income.’</p>
<p>“‘However high the tree, the leaves fall to the ground, and your
hour has come at last, O detestable Li Ting!’ said Yung, who had heard
the speakers and crept upon them unperceived. ‘As for my distinguished
and immaculate father-in-law, doubtless the heat has affected his indefatigable
brains, or he would not have listened to your contemptible suggestion. For
yourself, draw!’</p>
<p>“Both swords flashed, but before a blow could be struck the spirits of
his ancestors hurled Li Ting lifeless to the ground, to avenge the memories
that their unworthy descendant had so often reviled.</p>
<p>“‘So perish all the enemies of Yung Chang,’ said the victor.
‘And now, my venerated but exceedingly short-sighted father-in-law, learn
how narrowly you have escaped making yourself exceedingly objectionable to
yourself. I have just received intelligence from Peking that I have passed the
second degree, and have in consequence been appointed to a remunerative
position under the Government. This will enable us to live in comfort, if not
in affluence, and the rest of your engaging days can be peacefully spent in
flying kites.’”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="link2HCH0003" id="link2HCH0003"></SPAN> III.<br/> THE PROBATION OF SEN HENG</h2>
<p class="center">
Related by Kai Lung, at Wu-whei, as a rebuke to Wang Yu and certain others who
had questioned the practical value of his stories.</p>
<p>“It is an undoubted fact that this person has not realized the direct
remunerative advantage which he confidently anticipated,” remarked the
idle and discontented pipe-maker Wang Yu, as, with a few other persons of
similar inclination, he sat in the shade of the great mulberry tree at Wu-whei,
waiting for the evil influence of certain very mysterious sounds, which had
lately been heard, to pass away before he resumed his occupation. “When
the seemingly proficient and trustworthy Kai Lung first made it his practice to
journey to Wu-whei, and narrate to us the doings of persons of all classes of
life,” he continued, “it seemed to this one that by closely
following the recital of how Mandarins obtained their high position, and
exceptionally rich persons their wealth, he must, in the end, inevitably be
rendered competent to follow in their illustrious footsteps. Yet in how
entirely contrary a direction has the whole course of events tended! In spite
of the honourable intention which involved a frequent absence from his place of
commerce, those who journeyed thither with the set purpose of possessing one of
his justly-famed opium pipes so perversely regarded the matter that, after two
or three fruitless visits, they deliberately turned their footsteps towards the
workshop of the inelegant Ming-yo, whose pipes are confessedly greatly inferior
to those produced by the person who is now speaking. Nevertheless, the
rapacious Kai Lung, to whose influence the falling off in custom was thus
directly attributable, persistently declined to bear any share whatever in the
loss which his profession caused, and, indeed, regarded the circumstance from
so grasping and narrow-minded a point of observation that he would not even go
to the length of suffering this much-persecuted one to join the circle of his
hearers without on every occasion making the customary offering. In this manner
a well-intentioned pursuit of riches has insidiously led this person within
measurable distance of the bolted dungeon for those who do not meet their just
debts, while the only distinction likely to result from his assiduous study of
the customs and methods of those high in power is that of being publicly
bowstrung as a warning to others. Manifestedly the pointed finger of the
unreliable Kai Lung is a very treacherous guide.”</p>
<p>“It is related,” said a dispassionate voice behind them,
“that a person of limited intelligence, on being assured that he would
certainly one day enjoy an adequate competence if he closely followed the
industrious habits of the thrifty bee, spent the greater part of his life in
anointing his thighs with the yellow powder which he laboriously collected from
the flowers of the field. It is not so recorded; but doubtless the nameless one
in question was by profession a maker of opium pipes, for this person has
observed from time to time how that occupation, above all others, tends to
degrade the mental faculties, and to debase its followers to a lower position
than that of the beasts of labour. Learn therefrom, O superficial Wang Yu, that
wisdom lies in an intelligent perception of great principles, and not in a
slavish imitation of details which are, for the most part, beyond your simple
and insufficient understanding.”</p>
<p>“Such may, indeed, be the case, Kai Lung,” replied Wang Yu
sullenly—for it was the story-teller in question who had approached
unperceived, and who now stood before them—“but it is none the less
a fact that, on the last occasion when this misguided person joined the
attending circle at your uplifted voice, a Mandarin of the third degree chanced
to pass through Wu-whei, and halted at the door-step of ‘The Fountain of
Beauty,’ fully intending to entrust this one with the designing and
fashioning of a pipe of exceptional elaborateness. This matter, by his absence,
has now passed from him, and to-day, through listening to the narrative of how
the accomplished Yuin-Pel doubled his fortune, he is the poorer by many
taels.”</p>
<p>“Yet to-morrow, when the name of the Mandarin of the third degree appears
in the list of persons who have transferred their entire property to those who
are nearly related to them in order to avoid it being seized to satisfy the
just claims made against them,” replied Kai Lung, “you will be able
to regard yourself the richer by so many taels.”</p>
<p>At these words, which recalled to the minds of all who were present the not
uncommon manner of behaving observed by those of exalted rank, who freely
engaged persons to supply them with costly articles without in any way
regarding the price to be paid, Wang Yu was silent.</p>
<p>“Nevertheless,” exclaimed a thin voice from the edge of the group
which surrounded Kai Lung, “it in nowise follows that the stories are in
themselves excellent, or of such a nature that the hearing of their recital
will profit a person. Wang Yu may be satisfied with empty words, but there are
others present who were studying deep matters when Wang Yu was learning the art
of walking. If Kai Lung’s stories are of such remunerative benefit as the
person in question claims, how does it chance that Kai Lung himself who is
assuredly the best acquainted with them, stands before us in mean apparel, and
on all occasions confessing an unassuming poverty?”</p>
<p>“It is Yan-hi Pung,” went from mouth to mouth among the
bystanders—“Yan-hi Pung, who traces on paper the words of chants
and historical tales, and sells them to such as can afford to buy. And although
his motive in exposing the emptiness of Kai Lung’s stories may not be
Heaven-sent—inasmuch as Kai Lung provides us with such matter as he
himself purveys, only at a much more moderate price—yet his words are
well considered, and must therefore be regarded.”</p>
<p>“O Yan-hi Pung,” replied Kai Lung, hearing the name from those who
stood about him, and moving towards the aged person, who stood meanwhile
leaning upon his staff, and looking from side to side with quickly moving
eyelids in a manner very offensive towards the story-teller, “your just
remark shows you to be a person of exceptional wisdom, even as your well-bowed
legs prove you to be one of great bodily strength; for justice is ever obvious
and wisdom hidden, and they who build structures for endurance discard the
straight and upright and insist upon such an arch as you so symmetrically
exemplify.”</p>
<p>Speaking in this conciliatory manner, Kai Lung came up to Yan-hi Pung, and
taking between his fingers a disc of thick polished crystal, which the aged and
short-sighted chant-writer used for the purpose of magnifying and bringing
nearer the letters upon which he was engaged, and which hung around his neck by
an embroidered cord, the story-teller held it aloft, crying aloud:</p>
<p>“Observe closely, and presently it will be revealed and made clear how
the apparently very conflicting words of the wise Yan-hi Pung, and those of
this unassuming but nevertheless conscientious person who is now addressing
you, are, in reality, as one great truth.”</p>
<p>With this assurance Kai Lung moved the crystal somewhat, so that it engaged the
sun’s rays, and concentrated them upon the uncovered crown of the
unsuspecting and still objectionably-engaged person before him. Without a
moment’s pause, Yan-hi Pung leapt high into the air, repeatedly pressing
his hand to the spot thus selected and crying aloud:</p>
<p>“Evil dragons and thunderbolts! but the touch was as hot as a scar left
by the uncut nail of the sublime Buddha!”</p>
<p>“Yet the crystal—” remarked Kai Lung composedly, passing it
into the hands of those who stood near.</p>
<p>“Is as cool as the innermost leaves of the riverside sycamore,”
they declared.</p>
<p>Kai Lung said nothing further, but raised both his hands above his head, as if
demanding their judgment. Thereupon a loud shout went up on his behalf, for the
greater part of them loved to see the manner in which he brushed aside those
who would oppose him; and the sight of the aged person Yan-hi Pung leaping far
into the air had caused them to become exceptionally amused, and, in
consequence, very amiably disposed towards the one who had afforded them the
entertainment.</p>
<p>“The story of Sen Heng,” began Kai Lung, when the discussion had
terminated in the manner already recorded, “concerns itself with one who
possessed an unsuspecting and ingenious nature, which ill-fitted him to take an
ordinary part in the everyday affairs of life, no matter how engaging such a
character rendered him among his friends and relations. Having at an early age
been entrusted with a burden of rice and other produce from his father’s
fields to dispose of in the best possible manner at a neighbouring mart, and
having completed the transaction in a manner extremely advantageous to those
with whom he trafficked but very intolerable to the one who had sent him, it at
once became apparent that some other means of gaining a livelihood must be
discovered for him.</p>
<p>“‘Beyond all doubt,’ said his father, after considering the
matter for a period, ‘it is a case in which one should be governed by the
wise advice and example of the Mandarin Poo-chow.’</p>
<p>“‘Illustrious sire,’ exclaimed Sen Heng, who chanced to be
present, ‘the illiterate person who stands before you is entirely
unacquainted with the one to whom you have referred; nevertheless, he will, as
you suggest, at once set forth, and journeying with all speed to the abode of
the estimable Poo-chow, solicit his experience and advice.’</p>
<p>“‘Unless a more serious loss should be occasioned,’ replied
the father coldly, ‘there is no necessity to adopt so extreme a course.
The benevolent Mandarin in question existed at a remote period of the Thang
dynasty, and the incident to which an allusion has been made arose in the
following way: To the public court of the enlightened Poo-chow there came one
day a youth of very inferior appearance and hesitating manner, who besought his
explicit advice, saying: “The degraded and unprepossessing being before
you, O select and venerable Mandarin, is by nature and attainments a person of
the utmost timidity and fearfulness. From this cause life itself has become a
detestable observance in his eyes, for those who should be his companions of
both sexes hold him in undisguised contempt, making various unendurable
allusions to the colour and nature of his internal organs whenever he would
endeavour to join them. Instruct him, therefore, the manner in which this
cowardice may be removed, and no service in return will be esteemed too
great.” “There is a remedy,” replied the benevolent Mandarin,
without any hesitation whatever, “which if properly carried out is
efficacious beyond the possibility of failure. Certain component parts of your
body are lacking, and before the desired result can be obtained these must be
supplied from without. Of all courageous things the tiger is the most fearless,
and in consequence it combines all those ingredients which you require;
furthermore, as the teeth of the tiger are the instruments with which it
accomplishes its vengeful purpose, there reside the essential principles of its
inimitable courage. Let the person who seeks instruction in the matter,
therefore, do as follows: taking the teeth of a full-grown tiger as soon as it
is slain, and before the essences have time to return into the body, he shall
grind them to a powder, and mixing the powder with a portion of rice, consume
it. After seven days he must repeat the observance, and yet again a third time,
after another similar lapse. Let him, then, return for further guidance; for
the present the matter interests this person no further.” At these words
the youth departed, filled with a new and inspired hope; for the wisdom of the
sagacious Poo-chow was a matter which did not admit of any doubt whatever, and
he had spoken with well-defined certainty of the success of the experiment.
Nevertheless, after several days industriously spent in endeavouring to obtain
by purchase the teeth of a newly-slain tiger, the details of the undertaking
began to assume a new and entirely unforeseen aspect; for those whom he
approached as being the most likely to possess what he required either became
very immoderately and disagreeably amused at the nature of the request, or
regarded it as a new and ill-judged form of ridicule, which they prepared to
avenge by blows and by base remarks of the most personal variety. At length it
became unavoidably obvious to the youth that if he was to obtain the articles
in question it would first be necessary that he should become adept in the art
of slaying tigers, for in no other way were the required conditions likely to
be present. Although the prospect was one which did not greatly tend to allure
him, yet he did not regard it with the utterly incapable emotions which would
have been present on an earlier occasion; for the habit of continually guarding
himself from the onslaughts of those who received his inquiry in an attitude of
narrow-minded distrust had inspired him with a new-found valour, while his
amiable and unrestrained manner of life increased his bodily vigour in every
degree. First perfecting himself in the use of the bow and arrow, therefore, he
betook himself to a wild and very extensive forest, and there concealed himself
among the upper foliage of a tall tree standing by the side of a pool of water.
On the second night of his watch, the youth perceived a large but somewhat
ill-conditioned tiger approaching the pool for the purpose of quenching its
thirst, whereupon he tremblingly fitted an arrow to his bowstring, and
profiting by the instruction he had received, succeeded in piercing the
creature to the heart. After fulfilling the observance laid upon him by the
discriminating Poo-chow, the youth determined to remain in the forest, and
sustain himself upon such food as fell to his weapons, until the time arrived
when he should carry out the rite for the last time. At the end of seven days,
so subtle had he become in all kinds of hunting, and so strengthened by the
meat and herbs upon which he existed, that he disdained to avail himself of the
shelter of a tree, but standing openly by the side of the water, he engaged the
attention of the first tiger which came to drink, and discharged arrow after
arrow into its body with unfailing power and precision. So entrancing, indeed,
had the pursuit become that the next seven days lengthened out into the
apparent period of as many moons, in such a leisurely manner did they rise and
fall. On the appointed day, without waiting for the evening to arrive, the
youth set out with the first appearance of light, and penetrated into the most
inaccessible jungles, crying aloud words of taunt-laden challenge to all the
beasts therein, and accusing the ancestors of their race of every imaginable
variety of evil behaviour. Yet so great had become the renown of the one who
stood forth, and so widely had the warning voice been passed from tree to tree,
preparing all who dwelt in the forest against his anger, that not even the
fiercest replied openly, though low growls and mutterings proceeded from every
cave within a bow-shot’s distance around. Wearying quickly of such feeble
and timorous demonstrations, the youth rushed into the cave from which the
loudest murmurs proceeded, and there discovered a tiger of unnatural size,
surrounded by the bones of innumerable ones whom it had devoured; for from time
to time its ravages became so great and unbearable, that armies were raised in
the neighbouring villages and sent to destroy it, but more than a few
stragglers never returned. Plainly recognizing that a just and inevitable
vengeance had overtaken it, the tiger made only a very inferior exhibition of
resistance, and the youth, having first stunned it with a blow of his closed
hand, seized it by the middle, and repeatedly dashed its head against the rocky
sides of its retreat. He then performed for the third time the ceremony
enjoined by the Mandarin, and having cast upon the cringing and despicable
forms concealed in the surrounding woods and caves a look of dignified and
ineffable contempt, set out upon his homeward journey, and in the space of
three days’ time reached the town of the versatile Poo-chow.
“Behold,” exclaimed that person, when, lifting up his eyes, he saw
the youth approaching laden with the skins of the tigers and other spoils,
“now at least the youths and maidens of your native village will no
longer withdraw themselves from the company of so undoubtedly heroic a
person.” “Illustrious Mandarin,” replied the other, casting
both his weapons and his trophies before his inspired adviser’s feet,
“what has this person to do with the little ones of either sex? Give him
rather the foremost place in your ever-victorious company of bowmen, so that he
may repay in part the undoubted debt under which he henceforth exists.”
This proposal found favour with the pure-minded Poo-chow, so that in course of
time the unassuming youth who had come supplicating his advice became the
valiant commander of his army, and the one eventually chosen to present
plighting gifts to his only daughter.’</p>
<p>“When the father had completed the narrative of how the faint-hearted
youth became in the end a courageous and resourceful leader of bowmen, Sen
looked up, and not in any degree understanding the purpose of the story, or why
it had been set forth before him, exclaimed:</p>
<p>“‘Undoubtedly the counsel of the graceful and intelligent Mandarin
Poo-chow was of inestimable service in the case recorded, and this person would
gladly adopt it as his guide for the future, on the chance of it leading to a
similar honourable career; but alas! there are no tigers to be found throughout
this Province.’</p>
<p>“‘It is a loss which those who are engaged in commerce in the city
of Hankow strive to supply adequately,’ replied his father, who had an
assured feeling that it would be of no avail to endeavour to show Sen that the
story which he had just related was one setting forth a definite precept rather
than fixing an exact manner of behaviour. ‘For that reason,’ he
continued, ‘this person has concluded an arrangement by which you will
journey to that place, and there enter into the house of commerce of an expert
and conscientious vendor of moving contrivances. Among so rapacious and
keen-witted a class of persons as they of Hankow, it is exceedingly unlikely
that your amiable disposition will involve any individual one in an unavoidably
serious loss, and even should such an unforeseen event come to pass, there
will, at least, be the undeniable satisfaction of the thought that the
unfortunate occurrence will in no way affect the prosperity of those to whom
you are bound by the natural ties of affection.’</p>
<p>“‘Benevolent and virtuous-minded father,’ replied Sen gently,
but speaking with an inspired conviction; ‘from his earliest infancy this
unassuming one has been instructed in an inviolable regard for the Five General
Principles of Fidelity to the Emperor, Respect for Parents, Harmony between
Husband and Wife, Agreement among Brothers, and Constancy in Friendship. It
will be entirely unnecessary to inform so pious-minded a person as the one now
being addressed that no evil can attend the footsteps of an individual who
courteously observes these enactments.’</p>
<p>“‘Without doubt it is so arranged by the protecting Deities,’
replied the father; ‘yet it is an exceedingly desirable thing for those
who are responsible in the matter that the footsteps to which reference has
been made should not linger in the neighbourhood of the village, but should,
with all possible speed, turn in the direction of Hankow.’</p>
<p>“In this manner it came to pass that Sen Heng set forth on the following
day, and coming without delay to the great and powerful city of Hankow, sought
out the house of commerce known as ‘The Pure Gilt Dragon of Exceptional
Symmetry,’ where the versatile King-y-Yang engaged in the entrancing
occupation of contriving moving figures, and other devices of an ingenious and
mirth-provoking character, which he entrusted into the hands of numerous
persons to sell throughout the Province. From this cause, although enjoying a
very agreeable recompense from the sale of the objects, the greatly perturbed
King-y-Yang suffered continual internal misgivings; for the habit of behaving
of those whom he appointed to go forth in the manner described was such that he
could not entirely dismiss from his mind an assured conviction that the details
were not invariably as they were represented to be. Frequently would one return
in a very deficient and unpresentable condition of garment, asserting that on
his return, while passing through a lonely and unprotected district, he had
been assailed by an armed band of robbers, and despoiled of all he possessed.
Another would claim to have been made the sport of evil spirits, who led him
astray by means of false signs in the forest, and finally destroyed his entire
burden of commodities, accompanying the unworthy act by loud cries of triumph
and remarks of an insulting nature concerning King-y-Yang; for the honourable
character and charitable actions of the person in question had made him very
objectionable to that class of beings. Others continually accounted for the
absence of the required number of taels by declaring that at a certain point of
their journey they were made the object of marks of amiable condescension on
the part of a high and dignified public official, who, on learning in whose
service they were, immediately professed an intimate personal friendship with
the estimable King-y-Yang, and, out of a feeling of gratified respect for him,
took away all such contrivances as remained undisposed of, promising to arrange
the payment with the refined King-y-Yang himself when they should next meet.
For these reasons King-y-Yang was especially desirous of obtaining one whose
spoken word could be received, upon all points, as an assured fact, and it was,
therefore, with an emotion of internal lightness that he confidently heard from
those who were acquainted with the person that Sen Heng was, by nature and
endowments, utterly incapable of representing matters of even the most
insignificant degree to be otherwise than what they really were.</p>
<p>Filled with an acute anxiety to discover what amount of success would be
accorded to his latest contrivance, King-y-Yang led Sen Heng to a secluded
chamber, and there instructed him in the method of selling certain apparently
very ingeniously constructed ducks, which would have the appearance of swimming
about on the surface of an open vessel of water, at the same time uttering loud
and ever-increasing cries, after the manner of their kind. With ill-restrained
admiration at the skilful nature of the deception, King-y-Yang pointed out that
the ducks which were to be disposed of, and upon which a seemingly very low
price was fixed, did not, in reality, possess any of these accomplishments, but
would, on the contrary, if placed in water, at once sink to the bottom in a
most incapable manner; it being part of Sen’s duty to exhibit only a
specially prepared creature which was restrained upon the surface by means of
hidden cords, and, while bending over it, to simulate the cries as agreed upon.
After satisfying himself that Sen could perform these movements competently,
King-y-Yang sent him forth, particularly charging him that he should not return
without a sum of money which fully represented the entire number of ducks
entrusted to him, or an adequate number of unsold ducks to compensate for the
deficiency.</p>
<p>“At the end of seven days Sen returned to King-y-Yang, and although
entirely without money, even to the extent of being unable to provide himself
with the merest necessities of a frugal existence, he honourably returned the
full number of ducks with which he had set out. It then became evident that
although Sen had diligently perfected himself in the sounds and movements which
King-y-Yang had contrived, he had not fully understood that they were to be
executed stealthily, but had, in consequence, manifested the accomplishment
openly, not unreasonably supposing that such an exhibition would be an
additional inducement to those who appeared to be well-disposed towards the
purchase. From this cause it came about that although large crowds were
attracted by Sen’s manner of conducting the enterprise, none actually
engaged to purchase even the least expensively-valued of the ducks, although
several publicly complimented Sen on his exceptional proficiency, and
repeatedly urged him to louder and more frequent cries, suggesting that by such
means possible buyers might be attracted to the spot from remote and
inaccessible villages in the neighbourhood.</p>
<p>“When King-y-Yang learned how the venture had been carried out, he became
most intolerably self-opinionated in his expressions towards Sen’s mental
attainments and the manner of his bringing up. It was entirely in vain that the
one referred to pointed out in a tone of persuasive and courteous restraint
that he had not, down to the most minute particulars, transgressed either the
general or the specific obligations of the Five General Principles, and that,
therefore, he was blameless, and even worthy of commendation for the manner in
which he had acted. With an inelegant absence of all refined feeling,
King-y-Yang most incapably declined to discuss the various aspects of the
controversy in an amiable manner, asserting, indeed, that for the consideration
of as many brass cash as Sen had mentioned principles he would cause him to be
thrown into prison as a person of unnatural ineptitude. Then, without rewarding
Sen for the time spent in his service, or even inviting him to partake of food
and wine, the insufferable deviser of very indifferent animated contrivances
again sent him out, this time into the streets of Hankow with a number of
delicately inlaid boxes, remarking in a tone of voice which plainly indicated
an exactly contrary desire that he would be filled with an overwhelming
satisfaction if Sen could discover any excuse for returning a second time
without disposing of anything. This remark Sen’s ingenuous nature led him
to regard as a definite fact, so that when a passer-by, who tarried to examine
the boxes chanced to remark that the colours might have been arranged to
greater advantage, in which case he would certainly have purchased at least one
of the articles, Sen hastened back, although in a distant part of the city, to
inform King-y-Yang of the suggestion, adding that he himself had been
favourably impressed with the improvement which could be effected by such an
alteration.</p>
<p>“The nature of King-y-Yang’s emotion when Sen again presented
himself before him—and when by repeatedly applied tests on various parts
of his body he understood that he was neither the victim of malicious demons,
nor wandering in an insensible condition in the Middle Air, but that the cause
of the return was such as had been plainly stated—was of so mixed and
benumbing a variety, that for a considerable space of time he was quite unable
to express himself in any way, either by words or by signs. By the time these
attributes returned there had formed itself within King-y-Yang’s mind a
design of most contemptible malignity, which seemed to present to his enfeebled
intellect a scheme by which Sen would be adequately punished, and finally
disposed of, without causing him any further trouble in the matter. For this
purpose he concealed the real condition of his sentiments towards Sen, and
warmly expressed himself in terms of delicate flattery regarding that
one’s sumptuous and unfailing taste in the matter of the blending of the
colours. Without doubt, he continued, such an alteration as the one proposed
would greatly increase the attractiveness of the inlaid boxes, and the matter
should be engaged upon without delay. In the meantime, however, not to waste
the immediate services of so discriminating and persevering a servant, he would
entrust Sen with a mission of exceptional importance, which would certainly
tend greatly to his remunerative benefit. In the district of Yun, in the
north-western part of the Province, said the crafty and treacherous
King-y-Yang, a particular kind of insect was greatly esteemed on account of the
beneficent influence which it exercised over the rice plants, causing them to
mature earlier, and to attain a greater size than ever happened in its absence.
In recent years this creature had rarely been seen in the neighbourhood of Yun,
and, in consequence, the earth-tillers throughout that country had been brought
into a most disconcerting state of poverty, and would, inevitably, be prepared
to exchange whatever they still possessed for even a few of the insects, in
order that they might liberate them to increase, and so entirely reverse the
objectionable state of things. Speaking in this manner, King-y-Yang entrusted
to Sen a carefully prepared box containing a score of the insects, obtained at
a great cost from a country beyond the Bitter Water, and after giving him
further directions concerning the journey, and enjoining the utmost secrecy
about the valuable contents of the box, he sent him forth.</p>
<p>“The discreet and sagacious will already have understood the nature of
King-y-Yang’s intolerable artifice; but, for the benefit of the amiable
and unsuspecting, it is necessary to make it clear that the words which he had
spoken bore no sort of resemblance to affairs as they really existed. The
district around Yun was indeed involved in a most unprepossessing destitution,
but this had been caused, not by the absence of any rare and auspicious insect,
but by the presence of vast hordes of locusts, which had overwhelmed and
devoured the entire face the country. It so chanced that among the recently
constructed devices at ‘The Pure Gilt Dragon of Exceptional
Symmetry’ were a number of elegant representations of rice fields and
fruit gardens so skilfully fashioned that they deceived even the creatures, and
attracted, among other living things, all the locusts in Hankow into that place
of commerce. It was a number of these insects that King-y-Yang vindictively
placed in the box which he instructed Sen to carry to Yun, well knowing that
the reception which would be accorded to anyone who appeared there on such a
mission would be of so fatally destructive a kind that the consideration of his
return need not engage a single conjecture.</p>
<p>“Entirely tranquil in intellect—for the possibility of
King-y-Yang’s intention being in any way other than what he had
represented it to be did not arise within Sen’s ingenuous mind—the
person in question cheerfully set forth on his long but unavoidable march
towards the region of Yun. As he journeyed along the way, the nature of his
meditation brought up before him the events which had taken place since his
arrival at Hankow; and, for the first time, it was brought within his
understanding that the story of the youth and the three tigers, which his
father had related to him, was in the likeness of a proverb, by which counsel
and warning is conveyed in a graceful and inoffensive manner. Readily applying
the fable to his own condition, he could not doubt but that the first two
animals to be overthrown were represented by the two undertakings which he had
already conscientiously performed in the matter of the mechanical ducks and the
inlaid boxes, and the conviction that he was even then engaged on the third and
last trial filled him with an intelligent gladness so unobtrusive and refined
that he could express his entrancing emotions in no other way than by lifting
up his voice and uttering the far-reaching cries which he had used on the first
of the occasions just referred to.</p>
<p>“In this manner the first part of the journey passed away with engaging
celerity. Anxious as Sen undoubtedly was to complete the third task, and
approach the details which, in his own case, would correspond with the command
of the bowmen and the marriage with the Mandarin’s daughter of the person
in the story, the noontide heat compelled him to rest in the shade by the
wayside for a lengthy period each day. During one of these pauses it occurred
to his versatile mind that the time which was otherwise uselessly expended
might be well disposed of in endeavouring to increase the value and condition
of the creatures under his care by instructing them in the performance of some
simple accomplishments, such as might not be too laborious for their feeble and
immature understanding. In this he was more successful than he had imagined
could possibly be the case, for the discriminating insects, from the first, had
every appearance of recognizing that Sen was inspired by a sincere regard for
their ultimate benefit, and was not merely using them for his own advancement.
So assiduously did they devote themselves to their allotted tasks, that in a
very short space of time there was no detail in connexion with their own simple
domestic arrangements that was not understood and daily carried out by an
appointed band. Entranced at this intelligent manner of conducting themselves,
Sen industriously applied his time to the more congenial task of instructing
them in the refined arts, and presently he had the enchanting satisfaction of
witnessing a number of the most cultivated faultlessly and unhesitatingly
perform a portion of the well-known gravity-removing play entitled “The
Benevolent Omen of White Dragon Tea Garden; or, Three Times a Mandarin.”
Not even content with this elevating display, Sen ingeniously contrived, from
various objects which he discovered at different points by the wayside, an
effective and life-like representation of a war-junk, for which he trained a
crew, who, at an agreed signal, would take up their appointed places and go
through the required movements, both of sailing, and of discharging the guns,
in a reliable and efficient manner.</p>
<p>“As Sen was one day educating the least competent of the insects in the
simpler parts of banner-carriers, gong-beaters, and the like, to their more
graceful and versatile companions, he lifted up his eyes and beheld, standing
by his side, a person of very elaborately embroidered apparel and commanding
personality, who had all the appearance of one who had been observing his
movements for some space of time. Calling up within his remembrance the warning
which he had received from King-y-Yang, Sen was preparing to restore the
creatures to their closed box, when the stranger, in a loud and dignified
voice, commanded him to refrain, adding:</p>
<p>“‘There is, resting at a spot within the immediate neighbourhood, a
person of illustrious name and ancestry, who would doubtless be gratified to
witness the diverting actions of which this one has recently been a spectator.
As the reward of a tael cannot be unwelcome to a person of your inferior
appearance and unpresentable garments, take up your box without delay, and
follow the one who is now before you.’</p>
<p>“With these words the richly-clad stranger led the way through a narrow
woodland path, closely followed by Sen, to whom the attraction of the promised
reward—a larger sum, indeed, than he had ever possessed—was
sufficiently alluring to make him determined that the other should not, for the
briefest possible moment, pass beyond his sight.</p>
<p>“Not to withhold that which Sen was entirely ignorant of until a later
period, it is now revealed that the person in question was the official
Provider of Diversions and Pleasurable Occupations to the sacred and
illimitable Emperor, who was then engaged in making an unusually extensive
march through the eight Provinces surrounding his Capital—for the acute
and well-educated will not need to be reminded that Nanking occupied that
position at the time now engaged with. Until his providential discovery of Sen,
the distinguished Provider had been immersed in a most unenviable condition of
despair, for his enlightened but exceedingly perverse-minded master had, of
late, declined to be in any way amused, or even interested, by the simple and
unpretentious entertainment which could be obtained in so inaccessible a
region. The well-intentioned efforts of the followers of the Court, who
engagingly endeavoured to divert the Imperial mind by performing certain feats
which they remembered to have witnessed on previous occasions, but which, until
the necessity arose, they had never essayed, were entirely without result of a
beneficial order. Even the accomplished Provider’s one
attainment—that of striking together both the hands and the feet thrice
simultaneously, while leaping into the air, and at the same time producing a
sound not unlike that emitted by a large and vigorous bee when held captive in
the fold of a robe, an action which never failed to throw the illustrious
Emperor into a most uncontrollable state of amusement when performed within the
Imperial Palace—now only drew from him the unsympathetic, if not actually
offensive, remark that the attitude and the noise bore a marked resemblance to
those produced by a person when being bowstrung, adding, with unprepossessing
significance, that of the two entertainments he had an unevadable conviction
that the bowstringing would be the more acceptable and gravity-removing.</p>
<p>“When Sen beheld the size and the silk-hung magnificence of the camp into
which his guide led him, he was filled with astonishment, and at the same time
recognized that he had acted in an injudicious and hasty manner by so readily
accepting the offer of a tael; whereas, if he had been in possession of the
true facts of the case, as they now appeared, he would certainly have
endeavoured to obtain double that amount before consenting. As he was
hesitating within himself whether the matter might not even yet be arranged in
a more advantageous manner, he was suddenly led forward into the most striking
and ornamental of the tents, and commanded to engage the attention of the one
in whose presence he found himself, without delay.</p>
<p>“From the first moment when the inimitable creatures began, at
Sen’s spoken word, to go through the ordinary details of their domestic
affairs, there was no sort of doubt as to the nature of the success with which
their well-trained exertions would be received. The dark shadows instantly
forsook the enraptured Emperor’s select brow, and from time to time he
expressed himself in words of most unrestrained and intimate encouragement. So
exuberant became the overjoyed Provider’s emotion at having at length
succeeded in obtaining the services of one who was able to recall his Imperial
master’s unclouded countenance, that he came forward in a most
unpresentable state of haste, and rose into the air uncommanded, for the
display of his usually not unwelcome acquirement. This he would doubtless have
executed competently had not Sen, who stood immediately behind him, suddenly
and unexpectedly raised his voice in a very vigorous and proficient duck cry,
thereby causing the one before him to endeavour to turn around in alarm, while
yet in the air—an intermingled state of movements of both the body and
the mind that caused him to abandon his original intention in a manner which
removed the gravity of the Emperor to an even more pronounced degree than had
been effected by the diverting attitudes of the insects.</p>
<p>“When the gratified Emperor had beheld every portion of the tasks which
Sen had instilled into the minds of the insects, down even to the minutest
detail, he called the well-satisfied Provider before him, and addressing him in
a voice which might be designed to betray either sternness or an amiable
indulgence, said:</p>
<p>“‘You, O Shan-se, are reported to be a person of no particular
intellect or discernment, and, for this reason, these ones who are speaking
have a desire to know how the matter will present itself in your eyes. Which is
it the more commendable and honourable for a person to train to a condition of
unfailing excellence, human beings of confessed intelligence or insects of a
low and degraded standard?’</p>
<p>“To this remark the discriminating Shan-se made no reply, being, indeed,
undecided in his mind whether such a course was expected of him. On several
previous occasions the somewhat introspective Emperor had addressed himself to
persons in what they judged to be the form of a question, as one might say,
‘How blue is the unapproachable air canopy, and how delicately imagined
the colour of the clouds!’ yet when they had expressed their deliberate
opinion on the subjects referred to, stating the exact degree of blueness, and
the like, the nature of their reception ever afterwards was such that, for the
future, persons endeavoured to determine exactly the intention of the
Emperor’s mind before declaring themselves in words. Being exceedingly
doubtful on this occasion, therefore, the very cautious Shan-se adopted the
more prudent and uncompromising attitude, and smiling acquiescently, he raised
both his hands with a self-deprecatory movement.</p>
<p>“‘Alas!’ exclaimed the Emperor, in a tone which plainly
indicated that the evasive Shan-se had adopted a course which did not commend
itself, ‘how unendurable a condition of affairs is it for a person of
acute mental perception to be annoyed by the inopportune behaviour of one who
is only fit to mix on terms of equality with beggars, and low-caste street
cleaners—’</p>
<p>“‘Such a condition of affairs is indeed most offensively
unbearable, illustrious Being,’ remarked Shan-se, who clearly perceived
that his former silence had not been productive of a delicate state of feeling
towards himself.</p>
<p>“‘It has frequently been said,’ continued the courteous and
pure-minded Emperor, only signifying his refined displeasure at Shan-se’s
really ill-considered observation by so arranging his position that the person
in question on longer enjoyed the sublime distinction of gazing upon his
benevolent face, ‘that titles and offices have been accorded, from time
to time, without any regard for the fitting qualifications of those to whom
they were presented. The truth that such a state of things does occasionally
exist has been brought before our eyes during the past few days by the
abandoned and inefficient behaviour of one who will henceforth be a marked
official; yet it has always been our endeavour to reward expert and unassuming
merit, whenever it is discovered. As we were setting forth, when we were
interrupted in a most obstinate and superfluous manner, the one who can guide
and cultivate the minds of unthinking, and not infrequently obstinate and
rapacious, insects would certainly enjoy an even greater measure of success if
entrusted with the discriminating intellects of human beings. For this reason
it appears that no more fitting person could be found to occupy the important
and well-rewarded position of Chief Arranger of the Competitive Examinations
than the one before us—provided his opinions and manner of expressing
himself are such as commend themselves to us. To satisfy us on this point let
Sen Heng now stand forth and declare his beliefs.’</p>
<p>“On this invitation Sen advanced the requisite number of paces, and not
in any degree understanding what was required of him, determined that the
occasion was one when he might fittingly declare the Five General Principles
which were ever present in his mind. ‘Unquestioning Fidelity to the
Sacred Emperor—’ he began, when the person in question signified
that the trial was over.</p>
<p>“‘After so competent and inspired an expression as that which has
just been uttered, which, if rightly considered, includes all lesser things, it
is unnecessary to say more,’ he declared affably. ‘The appointment
which has already been specified is now declared to be legally conferred. The
evening will be devoted to a repetition of the entrancing manoeuvres performed
by the insects, to be followed by a feast and music in honour of the recognized
worth and position of the accomplished Sen Heng. There is really no necessity
for the apparently over-fatigued Shan-se to attend the festival.’</p>
<p>“In such a manner was the foundation of Sen’s ultimate prosperity
established, by which he came in the process of time to occupy a very high
place in public esteem. Yet, being a person of honourably-minded
conscientiousness, he did not hesitate, when questioned by those who made
pilgrimages to him for the purpose of learning by what means he had risen to so
remunerative a position, to ascribe his success, not entirely to his own
intelligent perception of persons and events, but, in part, also to a
never-failing regard for the dictates of the Five General Principles, and a
discriminating subservience to the inspired wisdom of the venerable Poo-chow,
as conveyed to him in the story of the faint-hearted youth and the three
tigers. This story Sen furthermore caused to be inscribed in letters of gold,
and displayed in a prominent position in his native village, where it has since
doubtless been the means of instructing and advancing countless observant ones
who have not been too insufferable to be guided by the experience of those who
have gone before.”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="link2HCH0004" id="link2HCH0004"></SPAN> IV.<br/> THE EXPERIMENT OF THE MANDARIN CHAN HUNG</h2>
<p class="center">
Related by Kai Lung at Shan Tzu, on the occasion of his receiving a very
unexpected reward.</p>
<p>“There are certainly many occasions when the principles of the Mandarin
Chan Hung appear to find practical favour in the eyes of those who form this
usually uncomplaining person’s audiences at Shan Tzu,” remarked Kai
Lung, with patient resignation, as he took up his collecting-bowl and
transferred the few brass coins which it held to a concealed place among his
garments. “Has the village lately suffered from a visit of one of those
persons who come armed with authority to remove by force or stratagem such
goods as bear names other than those possessed by their holders? or is it,
indeed—as they of Wu-whei confidently assert—that when the Day of
Vows arrives the people of Shan Tzu, with one accord, undertake to deny
themselves in the matter of gifts and free offerings, in spite of every
conflicting impulse?”</p>
<p>“They of Wu-whei!” exclaimed a self-opinionated bystander, who had
by some means obtained an inferior public office, and who was, in consequence,
enabled to be present on all occasions without contributing any offering.
“Well is that village named ‘The Refuge of Unworthiness,’ for
its dwellers do little but rob and illtreat strangers, and spread evil and
lying reports concerning better endowed ones than themselves.”</p>
<p>“Such a condition of affairs may exist,” replied Kai Lung, without
any indication of concern either one way or the other; “yet it is an
undeniable fact that they reward this commonplace story-teller’s too
often underestimated efforts in a manner which betrays them either to be of
noble birth, or very desirous of putting to shame their less prosperous
neighbouring places.”</p>
<p>“Such exhibitions of uncalled-for lavishness are merely the signs of an
ill-regulated and inordinate vanity,” remarked a Mandarin of the eighth
grade, who chanced to be passing, and who stopped to listen to Kai Lung’s
words. “Nevertheless, it is not fitting that a collection of decaying
hovels, which Wu-whei assuredly is, should, in however small a detail, appear
to rise above Shan Tzu, so that if the versatile and unassuming Kai Lung will
again honour this assembly by allowing his well-constructed bowl to pass freely
to and fro, this obscure and otherwise entirely superfluous individual will
make it his especial care that the brass of Wu-whei shall be answered with
solid copper, and its debased pewter with doubly refined silver.”</p>
<p>With these encouraging words the very opportune Mandarin of the eighth grade
himself followed the story-teller’s collecting-bowl, observing closely
what each person contributed, so that, although he gave nothing from his own
store, Kai Lung had never before received so honourable an amount.</p>
<p>“O illustrious Kai Lung,” exclaimed a very industrious and ill-clad
herb-gatherer, who, in spite of his poverty, could not refrain from mingling
with listeners whenever the story-teller appeared in Shan Tzu, “a single
piece of brass money is to this person more than a block of solid gold to many
of Wu-whei; yet he has twice made the customary offering, once freely, once
because a courteous and pure-minded individual who possesses certain written
papers of his connected with the repayment of some few taels walked behind the
bowl and engaged his eyes with an unmistakable and very significant glance.
This fact emboldens him to make the following petition: that in place of the
not altogether unknown story of Yung Chang which had been announced the
proficient and nimble-minded Kai Lung will entice our attention with the
history of the Mandarin Chan Hung, to which reference has already been
made.”</p>
<p>“The occasion is undoubtedly one which calls for recognition to an
unusual degree,” replied Kai Lung with extreme affability. “To that
end this person will accordingly narrate the story which has been suggested,
notwithstanding the fact that it has been specially prepared for the ears of
the sublime Emperor, who is at this moment awaiting this unseemly one’s
arrival in Peking with every mark of ill-restrained impatience, tempered only
by his expectation of being the first to hear the story of the well-meaning but
somewhat premature Chan Hung.</p>
<p>“The Mandarin in question lived during the reign of the accomplished
Emperor Tsint-Sin, his Yamen being at Fow Hou, in the Province of Shan-Tung, of
which place he was consequently the chief official. In his conscientious desire
to administer a pure and beneficent rule, he not infrequently made himself a
very prominent object for public disregard, especially by his attempts to
introduce untried things, when from time to time such matters arose within his
mind and seemed to promise agreeable and remunerative results. In this manner
it came about that the streets of Fow Hou were covered with large flat stones,
to the great inconvenience of those persons who had, from a very remote period,
been in the habit of passing the night on the soft clay which at all seasons of
the year afforded a pleasant and efficient resting-place. Nevertheless, in
certain matters his engaging efforts were attended by an obvious success.
Having noticed that misfortunes and losses are much less keenly felt when they
immediately follow in the steps of an earlier evil, the benevolent and
humane-minded Chan Hung devised an ingenious method of lightening the burden of
a necessary taxation by arranging that those persons who were the most heavily
involved should be made the victims of an attack and robbery on the night
before the matter became due. By this thoughtful expedient the unpleasant duty
of parting from so many taels was almost imperceptibly led up to, and when,
after the lapse of some slight period, the first sums of money were secretly
returned, with a written proverb appropriate to the occasion, the public
rejoicing of those who, had the matter been left to its natural course, would
still have been filling the air with bitter and unendurable lamentations,
plainly testified to the inspired wisdom of the enlightened Mandarin.</p>
<p>“The well-merited success of this amiable expedient caused the Mandarin
Chan Hung every variety of intelligent emotion, and no day passed without him
devoting a portion of his time to the labour of discovering other advantages of
a similar nature. Engrossed in deep and very sublime thought of this order, he
chanced upon a certain day to be journeying through Fow Hou, when he met a
person of irregular intellect, who made an uncertain livelihood by following
the unassuming and charitably-disposed from place to place, chanting in a loud
voice set verses recording their virtues, which he composed in their honour. On
account of his undoubted infirmities this person was permitted a greater
freedom of speech with those above him than would have been the case had his
condition been merely ordinary; so that when Chan Hung observed him becoming
very grossly amused on his approach, to such an extent indeed, that he
neglected to perform any of the fitting acts of obeisance, the wise and
noble-minded Mandarin did not in any degree suffer his complacency to be
affected, but, drawing near, addressed him in a calm and dignified manner.</p>
<p>“‘Why, O Ming-hi,’ he said, ‘do you permit your gravity
to be removed to such an exaggerated degree at the sight of this in no way
striking or exceptional person? and why, indeed, do you stand in so unbecoming
an attitude in the presence of one who, in spite of his depraved inferiority,
is unquestionably your official superior, and could, without any hesitation,
condemn you to the tortures or even to bowstringing on the spot?’</p>
<p>“‘Mandarin,’ exclaimed Ming-hi, stepping up to Chan Hung,
and, without any hesitation, pressing the gilt button which adorned the
official’s body garment, accompanying the action by a continuous muffled
noise which suggested the repeated striking of a hidden bell, ‘you wonder
that this person stands erect on your approach, neither rolling his lowered
head repeatedly from side to side, nor tracing circles in the dust of Fow Hou
with his submissive stomach? Know then, the meaning of the proverb,
“Distrust an inordinate appearance of servility. The estimable person who
retires from your presence walking backwards may adopt that deferential manner
in order to keep concealed the long double-edged knife with which he had hoped
to slay you.” The excessive amusement that seized this offensive person
when he beheld your well-defined figure in the distance arose from his
perception of your internal satisfaction, which is, indeed, unmistakably
reflected in your symmetrical countenance. For, O Mandarin, in spite of your
honourable endeavours to turn things which are devious into a straight line,
the matters upon which you engage your versatile intellect—little as you
suspect the fact—are as grains of the finest Foo-chow sand in comparison
with that which escapes your attention.’</p>
<p>“‘Strange are your words, O Ming-hi, and dark to this person your
meaning,’ replied Chan Hung, whose feelings were evenly balanced between
a desire to know what thing he had neglected and a fear that his dignity might
suffer if he were observed to remain long conversing with a person of
Ming-hi’s low mental attainments. ‘Without delay, and with an
entire absence of lengthy and ornamental forms of speech, express the omission
to which you have made reference; for this person has an uneasy inside emotion
that you are merely endeavouring to engage his attention to the end that you
may make an unseemly and irrelevant reply, and thereby involve him in an
undeserved ridicule.’</p>
<p>“‘Such a device would be the pastime of one of immature years, and
could have no place in this person’s habit of conduct,’ replied
Ming-hi, with every appearance of a fixed sincerity. ‘Moreover, the
matter is one which touches his own welfare closely, and, expressed in the
fashion which the proficient Mandarin has commanded, may be set forth as
follows: By a wise and all-knowing divine system, it is arranged that certain
honourable occupations, which by their nature cannot become remunerative to any
marked degree, shall be singled out for special marks of reverence, so that
those who engage therein may be compensated in dignity for what they must
inevitably lack in taels. By this refined dispensation the literary
occupations, which are in general the highroads to the Establishment of Public
Support and Uniform Apparel, are held in the highest veneration. Agriculture,
from which it is possible to wrest a competency, follows in esteem; while the
various branches of commerce, leading as they do to vast possessions and the
attendant luxury, are very justly deprived of all the attributes of dignity and
respect. Yet observe, O justice-loving Mandarin, how unbecomingly this
ingenious system of universal compensation has been debased at the instance of
grasping and avaricious ones. Dignity, riches and ease now go hand in hand, and
the highest rewarded in all matters are also the most esteemed, whereas, if the
discriminating provision of those who have gone before and so arranged it was
observed, the direct contrary would be the case.’</p>
<p>“‘It is a state of things which is somewhat difficult to imagine in
general matters of life, in spite of the fair-seemingness of your words,’
said the Mandarin thoughtfully; ‘nor can this rather obtuse and
slow-witted person fully grasp the practical application of the system on the
edge of the moment. In what manner would it operate in the case of ordinary
persons, for example?’</p>
<p>“‘There should be a fixed and settled arrangement that the
low-minded and degrading occupations—such as that of following charitable
persons from place to place, chanting verses composed in their honour, that of
misleading travellers who inquire the way, so that they fall into the hands of
robbers, and the like callings—should be the most highly rewarded to the
end that those who are engaged therein may obtain some solace for the loss of
dignity they experience, and the mean intellectual position which they are
compelled to maintain. By this device they would be enabled to possess certain
advantages and degrees of comfort which at present are utterly beyond their
grasp, so that in the end they would escape being entirely debased. To turn to
the other foot, those who are now high in position, and engaged in professions
which enjoy the confidence of all persons, have that which in itself is
sufficient to insure contentment. Furthermore, the most proficient and engaging
in every department, mean or high-minded, have certain attributes of respect
among those beneath them, so that they might justly be content with the lowest
reward in whatever calling they professed, the least skilful and most
left-handed being compensated for the mental anguish which they must
undoubtedly suffer by receiving the greatest number of taels.’</p>
<p>“‘Such a scheme would, as far as the matter has been expressed,
appear to possess all the claims of respect, and to be, indeed, what was
originally intended by those who framed the essentials of existence,’
said Chan Hung, when he had for some space of time considered the details.
‘In one point, however, this person fails to perceive how the arrangement
could be amiably conducted in Fow Hou. The one who is addressing you maintains,
as a matter of right, a position of exceptional respect, nor, if he must
express himself upon such a detail, are his excessively fatiguing duties
entirely unremunerative...’</p>
<p>“‘In the case of the distinguished and unalterable Mandarin,’
exclaimed Ming-hi, with no appearance of hesitation, ‘the matter would of
necessity be arranged otherwise. Being from that time, as it were, the
controller of the destinies and remunerations of all those in Fow Hou, he
would, manifestly, be outside the working of the scheme; standing apart and
regulating, like the person who turns the handle of the corn-mill, but does not
suffer himself to be drawn between the stones, he could still maintain both his
respect and his remuneration unaltered.’</p>
<p>“‘If the detail could honourably be regarded in such a
light,’ said Chan Hung, ‘this person would, without delay, so
rearrange matters in Fow Hou, and thereby create universal justice and an
unceasing contentment within the minds of all.’</p>
<p>“‘Undoubtedly such a course could be justly followed,’
assented Ming-hi, ‘for in precisely that manner of working was the
complete scheme revealed to this highly-favoured person.’</p>
<p>“Entirely wrapped up in thoughts concerning the inception and manner of
operation of this project Chan Hung began to retrace his steps towards the
Yamen, failing to observe in his benevolent abstraction of mind, that the
unaffectedly depraved person Ming-hi was stretching out his feet towards him
and indulging in every other form of low-minded and undignified contempt.</p>
<p>“Before he reached the door of his residence the Mandarin overtook one
who occupied a high position of confidence and remuneration in the Department
of Public Fireworks and Coloured Lights. Fully assured of this versatile
person’s enthusiasm on behalf of so humane and charitable a device, Chan
Hung explained the entire matter to him without delay, and expressly desired
that if there were any details which appeared capable of improvement, he would
declare himself clearly regarding them.</p>
<p>“‘Alas!’ exclaimed the person with whom the Mandarin was
conversing, speaking in so unfeignedly disturbed and terrified a voice that
several who were passing by stopped in order to learn the full circumstance,
‘have this person’s ears been made the object of some unnaturally
light-minded demon’s ill-disposed pastime, or does the usually
well-balanced Chan Hung in reality contemplate so violent and un-Chinese an
action? What but evil could arise from a single word of the change which he
proposes to the extent of a full written book? The entire fixed nature of
events would become reversed; persons would no longer be fully accountable to
one another; and Fow Hou being thus thrown into a most unendurable state of
confusion, the protecting Deities would doubtless withdraw their influence, and
the entire region would soon be given over to the malicious guardianship of
rapacious and evilly-disposed spirits. Let this person entreat the almost
invariably clear-sighted Chan Hung to return at once to his adequately equipped
and sumptuous Yamen, and barring well the door of his inner chamber, so that it
can only be opened from the outside, partake of several sleeping essences of
unusual strength, after which he will awake in an undoubtedly refreshed state
of mind, and in a condition to observe matters with his accustomed diamond-like
penetration.’</p>
<p>“‘By no means!’ cried one of those who had stopped to learn
the occasion of the incident—a very inferior maker of unserviceable
imitation pigtails—‘the devout and conscientious-minded Mandarin
Chan Hung speaks as the inspired mouth-piece of the omnipotent Buddha, and
must, for that reason, be obeyed in every detail. This person would
unhesitatingly counsel the now invaluable Mandarin to proceed to his
well-constructed residence without delay, and there calling together his entire
staff of those who set down his spoken words, put the complete Heaven-sent plan
into operation, and beyond recall, before he retires to his inner
chamber.’</p>
<p>“Upon this there arose a most inelegant display of undignified emotions
on the part of the assembly which had by this time gathered together. While
those who occupied honourable and remunerative positions very earnestly
entreated the Mandarin to act in the manner which had been suggested by the
first speaker, others—who had, in the meantime, made use of imagined
figures, and thereby discovered that the proposed change would be greatly to
their advantage—raised shouts of encouragement towards the proposal of
the pigtail-maker, urging the noble Mandarin not to become small in the face
towards the insignificant few who were ever opposed to enlightened reform, but
to maintain an unflaccid upper lip, and carry the entire matter through to its
destined end. In the course of this very unseemly tumult, which soon involved
all persons present in hostile demonstrations towards each other, both the
Mandarin and the official from the Fireworks and Coloured Lights Department
found an opportunity to pass away secretly, the former to consider well the
various sides of the matter, towards which he became better disposed with every
thought, the latter to find a purchaser of his appointment and leave Fow Hou
before the likelihood of Chan Hung’s scheme became generally known.</p>
<p>“At this point an earlier circumstance, which affected the future
unrolling of events to no insignificant degree, must be made known, concerning
as it does Lila, the fair and very accomplished daughter of Chan Hung.
Possessing no son or heir to succeed him, the Mandarin exhibited towards Lila a
very unusual depth of affection, so marked, indeed, that when certain
evil-minded ones endeavoured to encompass his degradation, on the plea of
eccentricity of character, the written papers which they dispatched to the high
ones at Peking contained no other accusation in support of the contention than
that the individual in question regarded his daughter with an obvious pride and
pleasure which no person of well-balanced intellect lavished on any but a son.</p>
<p>“It was his really conscientious desire to establish Lila’s welfare
above all things that had caused Chan Hung to become in some degree undecided
when conversing with Ming-hi on the detail of the scheme; for, unaffected as
the Mandarin himself would have been at the prospect of an honourable poverty,
it was no part of his intention that the adorable and exceptionally-refined
Lila should be drawn into such an existence. That, indeed, had been the
essential of his reply on a certain and not far removed occasion, when two
persons of widely differing positions had each made a formal request that he
might be allowed to present marriage-pledging gifts to the very desirable Lila.
Maintaining an enlightened openness of mind upon the subject, the Mandarin had
replied that nothing but the merit of undoubted suitableness of a person would
affect him in such a decision. As it was ordained by the wise and unchanging
Deities that merit should always be fittingly rewarded, he went on to express
himself, and as the most suitable person was obviously the one who could the
most agreeably provide for her, the two circumstances inevitably tended to the
decision that the one chosen should be the person who could amass the greatest
number of taels. To this end he instructed them both to present themselves at
the end of a year, bringing with them the entire profits of their undertakings
between the two periods.</p>
<p>“This deliberate pronouncement affected the two persons in question in an
entirely opposite manner, for one of them was little removed from a condition
of incessant and most uninviting poverty, while the other was the very
highly-rewarded picture-maker Pe-tsing. Both to this latter person, and to the
other one, Lee Sing, the ultimate conclusion of the matter did not seem to be a
question of any conjecture therefore, and, in consequence, the one became most
offensively self-confident, and the other leaden-minded to an equal degree,
neither remembering the unswerving wisdom of the proverb, ‘Wait! all men
are but as the black, horn-cased beetles which overrun the inferior
cooking-rooms of the city, and even at this moment the heavily-shod and
unerring foot of Buddha may be lifted.’</p>
<p>“Lee Sing was, by profession, one of those who hunt and ensnare the
brilliantly-coloured winged insects which are to be found in various parts of
the Empire in great variety and abundance, it being his duty to send a certain
number every year to Peking to contribute to the amusement of the dignified
Emperor. In spite of the not too intelligent nature of the occupation, Lee Sing
took an honourable pride in all matters connected with it. He disdained, with
well-expressed contempt, to avail himself of the stealthy and somewhat
deceptive methods employed by others engaged in a similar manner of life. In
this way he had, from necessity, acquired agility to an exceptional degree, so
that he could leap far into the air, and while in that position select from a
passing band of insects any which he might desire. This useful accomplishment
was, in a measure, the direct means of bringing together the person in question
and the engaging Lila; for, on a certain occasion, when Lee Sing was passing
through the streets of Fow Hou, he heard a great outcry, and beheld persons of
all ranks running towards him, pointing at the same time in an upward
direction. Turning his gaze in the manner indicated, Lee beheld, with every
variety of astonishment, a powerful and unnaturally large bird of prey,
carrying in its talons the lovely and now insensible Lila, to whom it had been
attracted by the magnificence of her raiment. The rapacious and evilly-inspired
creature was already above the highest dwelling-houses when Lee first beheld
it, and was plainly directing its course towards the inaccessible mountain
crags beyond the city walls. Nevertheless, Lee resolved upon an inspired
effort, and without any hesitation bounded towards it with such well-directed
proficiency, that if he had not stretched forth his hand on passing he would
inevitably have been carried far above the desired object. In this manner he
succeeded in dragging the repulsive and completely disconcerted monster to the
ground, where its graceful and unassuming prisoner was released, and the
presumptuous bird itself torn to pieces amid continuous shouts of a most
respectful and engaging description in honour of Lee and of his versatile
attainment.</p>
<p>“In consequence of this incident the grateful Lila would often
deliberately leave the society of the rich and well-endowed in order to
accompany Lee on his journeys in pursuit of exceptionally-precious winged
insects. Regarding his unusual ability as the undoubted cause of her existence
at that moment, she took an all-absorbing pride in such displays, and would
utter loud and frequent exclamations of triumph when Lee leaped out from behind
some rock, where he had lain concealed, and with unfailing regularity secured
the object of his adroit movement. In this manner a state of feeling which was
by no means favourable to the aspiring picture-maker Pe-tsing had long existed
between the two persons; but when Lee Sing put the matter in the form of an
explicit petition before Chan Hung (to which adequate reference has already
been made), the nature of the decision then arrived at seemed to clothe the
realization of their virtuous and estimable desires with an air of extreme
improbability.</p>
<p>“‘Oh, Lee,’ exclaimed the greatly-disappointed maiden when
her lover had explained to her the nature of the arrangement—for in her
unassuming admiration of the noble qualities of Lee she had anticipated that
Chan Hung would at once have received him with ceremonious embraces and
assurances of his permanent affection—‘how unendurable a state of
things is this in which we have become involved! Far removed from this
one’s anticipations was the thought of becoming inalienably associated
with that outrageous person Pe-tsing, or of entering upon an existence which
will necessitate a feigned admiration of his really unpresentable efforts. Yet
in such a manner must the entire circumstance complete its course unless some
ingenious method of evading it can be discovered in the meantime. Alas, my
beloved one! the occupation of ensnaring winged insects is indeed an alluring
one, but as far as this person has observed, it is also exceedingly
unproductive of taels. Could not some more expeditious means of enriching
yourself be discovered? Frequently has the unnoticed but nevertheless very
attentive Lila heard her father and the round-bodied ones who visit him speak
of exploits which seem to consist of assuming the shapes of certain wild
animals, and in that guise appearing from time to time at the place of exchange
within the city walls. As this form of entertainment is undoubtedly very
remunerative in its results, could not the versatile and ready-witted Lee
conceal himself within the skin of a bear, or some other untamed beast, and in
this garb, joining them unperceived, play an appointed part and receive a just
share of the reward?’</p>
<p>“‘The result of such an enterprise might, if the matter chanced to
take an unforeseen development, prove of a very doubtful nature,’ replied
Lee Sing, to whom, indeed, the proposed venture appeared in a somewhat
undignified light, although, with refined consideration, he withheld such a
thought from Lila, who had proposed it for him, and also confessed that her
usually immaculate father had taken part in such an exhibition.
‘Nevertheless, do not permit the dark shadow of an inward cloud to
reflect itself upon your almost invariably amiable countenance, for this person
has become possessed of a valuable internal suggestion which, although he has
hitherto neglected, being content with a small but assured competency, would
doubtless bring together a serviceable number of taels if rightly
utilized.’</p>
<p>“‘Greatly does this person fear that the valuable internal
suggestion of Lee Sing will weigh but lightly in the commercial balance against
the very rapidly executed pictures of Pe-tsing,’ said Lila, who had not
fully recalled from her mind a disturbing emotion that Lee would have been well
advised to have availed himself of her ingenious and well-thought-out
suggestion. ‘But of what does the matter consist?’</p>
<p>“‘It is the best explained by a recital of the circumstances
leading up to it,’ said Lee. ‘Upon an occasion when this person was
passing through the streets of Fow Hou, there gathered around him a company of
those who had, on previous occasions, beheld his exceptional powers of hurtling
himself through the air in an upward direction, praying that he would again
delight their senses by a similar spectacle. Not being unwilling to afford
those estimable persons of the amusement they desired, this one, without any
elaborate show of affected hesitancy, put himself into the necessary position,
and would without doubt have risen uninterruptedly almost into the Middle Air,
had he not, in making the preparatory movements, placed his left foot upon an
over-ripe wampee which lay unperceived on the ground. In consequence of this
really blameworthy want of caution the entire manner and direction of this
short-sighted individual’s movements underwent a sudden and complete
change, so that to those who stood around it appeared as though he were making
a well-directed endeavour to penetrate through the upper surface of the earth.
This unexpected display had the effect of removing the gravity of even the most
aged and severe-minded persons present, and for the space of some moments the
behaviour and positions of those who stood around were such that they were
quite unable to render any assistance, greatly as they doubtless wished to do
so. Being in this manner allowed a period for inward reflexion of a very
concentrated order, it arose within this one’s mind that at every similar
occurrence which he had witnessed, those who observed the event had been seized
in a like fashion, being very excessively amused. The fact was made even more
undoubted by the manner of behaving of an exceedingly stout and round-faced
person, who had not been present from the beginning, but who was affected to a
most incredible extent when the details, as they had occurred, were made plain
to him, he declaring, with many references to the Sacred Dragon and the Seven
Walled Temple at Peking, that he would willingly have contributed a specified
number of taels rather than have missed the diversion. When at length this
person reached his own chamber, he diligently applied himself to the task of
carrying into practical effect the suggestion which had arisen in his mind. By
an arrangement of transparent glasses and reflecting surfaces—which, were
it not for a well-defined natural modesty, he would certainly be tempted to
describe as highly ingenious—he ultimately succeeded in bringing about
the effect he desired.’</p>
<p>“With these words Lee put into Lila’s hands an object which closely
resembled the contrivances by which those who are not sufficiently powerful to
obtain positions near the raised platform, in the Halls of Celestial Harmony,
are nevertheless enabled to observe the complexions and attire of all around
them. Regulating it by means of a hidden spring, he requested her to follow
closely the actions of a heavily-burdened passerby who was at that moment some
little distance beyond them. Scarcely had Lila raised the glass to her eyes
than she became irresistibly amused to a most infectious degree, greatly to the
satisfaction of Lee, who therein beheld the realization of his hopes. Not for
the briefest space of time would she permit the object to pass from her, but
directed it at every person who came within her sight, with frequent and
unfeigned exclamations of wonder and delight.</p>
<p>“‘How pleasant and fascinating a device is this!’ exclaimed
Lila at length. ‘By what means is so diverting and gravity-removing a
result obtained?’</p>
<p>“‘Further than that it is the concentration of much labour of
continually trying with glasses and reflecting surfaces, this person is totally
unable to explain it,’ replied Lee. ‘The chief thing, however, is
that at whatever moving object it is directed—no matter whether a person
so observed is being carried in a chair, riding upon an animal, or merely
walking—at a certain point he has every appearance of being unexpectedly
hurled to the ground in a most violent and mirth-provoking manner. Would not
the stout and round-faced one, who would cheerfully have contributed a certain
number of taels to see this person manifest a similar exhibition,
unhesitatingly lay out that sum to secure the means of so gratifying his
emotions whenever he felt the desire, even with the revered persons of the most
dignified ones in the Empire? Is there, indeed, a single person between the
Wall and the Bitter Waters on the South who is so devoid of ambition that he
would miss the opportunity of subjecting, as it were, perhaps even the sacred
Emperor himself to the exceptional feat?’</p>
<p>“‘The temptation to possess one would inevitably prove overwhelming
to any person of ordinary intelligence,’ admitted Lila. ‘Yet, in
spite of this one’s unassumed admiration for the contrivance, internal
doubts regarding the ultimate happiness of the two persons who are now
discussing the matter again attack her. She recollects, somewhat dimly, an
almost forgotten, but nevertheless, very unassailable proverb, which declares
that more contentment of mind can assuredly be obtained from the unexpected
discovery of a tael among the folds of a discarded garment than could, in the
most favourable circumstances, ensue from the well-thought-out construction of
a new and hitherto unknown device. Furthermore, although the span of a year may
seem unaccountably protracted when persons who reciprocate engaging sentiments
are parted, yet when the acceptance or refusal of Pe-tsing’s undesirable
pledging-gifts hangs upon the accomplishment of a remote and not very probable
object within that period, it becomes as a breath of wind passing through an
autumn forest.’</p>
<p>“Since the day when Lila and Lee had sat together side by side, and
conversed in this unrestrained and irreproachable manner, the great sky-lantern
had many times been obscured for a period. Only an insignificant portion of the
year remained, yet the affairs of Lee Sing were in no more prosperous a
condition than before, nor had he found an opportunity to set aside any store
of taels. Each day the unsupportable Pe-tsing became more and more obtrusive
and self-conceited, even to the extent of throwing far into the air coins of
insignificant value whenever he chanced to pass Lee in the street, at the same
time urging him to leap after them and thereby secure at least one or two
pieces of money against the day of calculating. In a similar but entirely
opposite fashion, Lila and Lee experienced the acutest pangs of an ever-growing
despair, until their only form of greeting consisted in gazing into each
other’s eyes with a soul-benumbing expression of self-reproach.</p>
<p>“Yet at this very time, when even the natural and unalterable powers
seemed to be conspiring against the success of Lee’s modest and
inoffensive hopes, an event was taking place which was shortly to reverse the
entire settled arrangement of persons and affairs, and involved Fow Hou in a
very inextricable state of uncertainty. For, not to make a pretence of
concealing a matter which has been already in part revealed, the Mandarin Chan
Hung had by this time determined to act in the manner which Ming-hi had
suggested; so that on a certain morning Lee Sing was visited by two persons,
bearing between them a very weighty sack of taels, who also conveyed to him the
fact that a like amount would be deposited within his door at the end of each
succeeding seven days. Although Lee’s occupation had in the past been
very meagrely rewarded, either by taels or by honour, the circumstance which
resulted in his now receiving so excessively large a sum is not made clear
until the detail of Ming-hi’s scheme is closely examined. The matter then
becomes plain, for it had been suggested by that person that the most
proficient in any occupation should be rewarded to a certain extent, and the
least proficient to another stated extent, the original amounts being reversed.
When those engaged by Chang Hung to draw up the various rates came to the
profession of ensnaring winged insects, however, they discovered that Lee Sing
was the only one of that description in Fow Hou, so that it became necessary in
consequence to allot him a double portion, one amount as the most proficient,
and a much larger amount as the least proficient.</p>
<p>“It is unnecessary now to follow the not altogether satisfactory
condition of affairs which began to exist in Fow Hou as soon as the scheme was
put into operation. The full written papers dealing with the matter are in the
Hall of Public Reference at Peking, and can be seen by any person on the
payment of a few taels to everyone connected with the establishment. Those who
found their possessions reduced thereby completely overlooked the obvious
justice of the arrangement, and immediately began to take most severe measures
to have the order put aside; while those who suddenly and unexpectedly found
themselves raised to positions of affluence tended to the same end by
conducting themselves in a most incapable and undiscriminating manner. And
during the entire period that this state of things existed in Fow Hou the
really contemptible Ming-hi continually followed Chan Hung about from place to
place, spreading out his feet towards him, and allowing himself to become
openly amused to a most unseemly extent.</p>
<p>“Chief among those who sought to have the original manner of rewarding
persons again established was the picture-maker, Pe-tsing, who now found
himself in a condition of most abject poverty, so unbearable, indeed, that he
frequently went by night, carrying a lantern, in the hope that he might
discover some of the small pieces of money which he had been accustomed to
throw into the air on meeting Lee Sing. To his pangs of hunger was added the
fear that he would certainly lose Lila, so that from day to day he redoubled
his efforts, and in the end, by using false statements and other artifices of a
questionable nature, the party which he led was successful in obtaining the
degradation of Chan Hung and his dismissal from office, together with an entire
reversal of all his plans and enactments.</p>
<p>“On the last day of the year which Chan Hung had appointed as the period
of test for his daughter’s suitors, the person in question was seated in
a chamber of his new abode—a residence of unassuming appearance but
undoubted comfort—surrounded by Lila and Lee, when the hanging curtains
were suddenly flung aside, and Pe-tsing, followed by two persons of low rank
bearing sacks of money, appeared among them.</p>
<p>“‘Chan Hung,’ he said at length, ‘in the past events
arose which compelled this person to place himself against you in your official
position. Nevertheless, he has always maintained towards you personally an
unchanging affection, and understanding full well that you are one of those who
maintain their spoken word in spite of all happenings, he has now come to
exhibit the taels which he has collected together, and to claim the fulfilment
of your deliberate promise.’</p>
<p>“With these words the commonplace picture-maker poured forth the contents
of the sacks, and stood looking at Lila in a most confident and unprepossessing
manner.</p>
<p>“‘Pe-tsing,’ replied Chan Hung, rising from his couch and
speaking in so severe and impressive a voice that the two servants of Pe-tsing
at once fled in great apprehension, ‘this person has also found it
necessary, in his official position, to oppose you; but here the similarity
ends, for, on his part, he has never felt towards you the remotest degree of
affection. Nevertheless, he is always desirous, as you say, that persons should
regard their spoken word, and as you seem to hold a promise from the Chief
Mandarin of Fow Hou regarding marriage-gifts towards his daughter, he would
advise you to go at once to that person. A misunderstanding has evidently
arisen, for the one whom you are addressing is merely Chan Hung, and the words
spoken by the Mandarin have no sort of interest for him—indeed, he
understands that all that person’s acts have been reversed, so that he
fails to see how anyone at all can regard you and your claim in other than a
gravity-removing light. Furthermore, the maiden in question is now definitely
and irretrievably pledged to this faithful and successful one by my side, who,
as you will doubtless be gracefully overjoyed to learn, has recently disposed
of a most ingenious and diverting contrivance for an enormous number of taels,
so many, indeed, that both the immediate and the far-distant future of all the
persons who are here before you are now in no sort of doubt whatever.’</p>
<p>“At these words the three persons whom he had interrupted again turned
their attention to the matter before them; but as Pe-tsing walked away, he
observed, though he failed to understand the meaning, that they all raised
certain objects to their eyes, and at once became amused to a most striking and
uncontrollable degree.”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="link2HCH0005" id="link2HCH0005"></SPAN> V.<br/> THE CONFESSION OF KAI LUNG</h2>
<p class="center">
Related by himself at Wu-whei when other matter failed him.</p>
<p>As Kai Lung, the story-teller, unrolled his mat and selected, with grave
deliberation, the spot under the mulberry-tree which would the longest remain
sheltered from the sun’s rays, his impassive eye wandered round the thin
circle of listeners who had been drawn together by his uplifted voice, with a
glance which, had it expressed his actual thoughts, would have betrayed a keen
desire that the assembly should be composed of strangers rather than of his
most consistent patrons, to whom his stock of tales was indeed becoming
embarrassingly familiar. Nevertheless, when he began there was nothing in his
voice but a trace of insufficiently restrained triumph, such as might be fitly
assumed by one who has discovered and makes known for the first time a story by
the renowned historian Lo Châ.</p>
<p>“The adventures of the enlightened and nobly-born Yuin-Pel—”</p>
<p>“Have already thrice been narrated within Wu-whei by the versatile but
exceedingly uninventive Kai Lung,” remarked Wang Yu placidly.
“Indeed, has there not come to be a saying by which an exceptionally
frugal host’s rice, having undoubtedly seen the inside of the pot many
times, is now known in this town as Kai-Pel?”</p>
<p>“Alas!” exclaimed Kai Lung, “well was this person warned of
Wu-whei in the previous village, as a place of desolation and excessively bad
taste, whose inhabitants, led by an evil-minded maker of very commonplace
pipes, named Wang Yu, are unable to discriminate in all matters not connected
with the cooking of food and the evasion of just debts. They at Shan Tzu hung
on to my cloak as I strove to leave them, praying that I would again entrance
their ears with what they termed the melodious word-music of this
person’s inimitable version of the inspired story of Yuin-Pel.”</p>
<p>“Truly the story of Yuin-Pel is in itself excellent,” interposed
the conciliatory Hi Seng; “and Kai Lung’s accomplishment of having
three times repeated it here without deviating in the particular of a single
word from the first recital stamps him as a story-teller of no ordinary degree.
Yet the saying ‘Although it is desirable to lose persistently when
playing at squares and circles with the broad-minded and sagacious Emperor, it
is none the less a fact that the observance of this etiquette deprives the
intellectual diversion of much of its interest for both players,’ is no
less true today than when the all knowing H’sou uttered it.”</p>
<p>“They well said—they of Shan Tzu—that the people of Wu-whei
were intolerably ignorant and of low descent,” continued Kai Lung,
without heeding the interruption; “that although invariably of a timorous
nature, even to the extent of retiring to the woods on the approach of those
who select bowmen for the Imperial army, all they require in a story is that it
shall be garnished with deeds of bloodshed and violence to the exclusion of the
higher qualities of well-imagined metaphors and literary style which alone
constitute true excellence.”</p>
<p>“Yet it has been said,” suggested Hi Seng, “that the
inimitable Kai Lung can so mould a narrative in the telling that all the
emotions are conveyed therein without unduly disturbing the intellects of the
hearers.”</p>
<p>“O amiable Hi Seng,” replied Kai Lung with extreme affability,
“doubtless you are the most expert of water-carriers, and on a hot and
dusty day, when the insatiable desire of all persons is towards a draught of
unusual length without much regard to its composition, the sight of your
goat-skins is indeed a welcome omen; yet when in the season of Cold White Rains
you chance to meet the belated chair-carrier who has been reluctantly persuaded
into conveying persons beyond the limit of the city, the solitary official
watchman who knows that his chief is not at hand, or a returning band of those
who make a practise of remaining in the long narrow rooms until they are driven
forth at a certain gong-stroke, can you supply them with the smallest portion
of that invigorating rice spirit for which alone they crave? From this simple
and homely illustration, specially conceived to meet the requirements of your
stunted and meagre understanding, learn not to expect both grace and thorns
from the willow-tree. Nevertheless, your very immature remarks on the art of
story-telling are in no degree more foolish than those frequently uttered by
persons who make a living by such a practice; in proof of which this person
will relate to the select and discriminating company now assembled an entirely
new and unrecorded story—that, indeed, of the unworthy, but frequently
highly-rewarded Kai Lung himself.”</p>
<p>“The story of Kai Lung!” exclaimed Wang Yu. “Why not the
story of Ting, the sightless beggar, who has sat all his life outside the
Temple of Miraculous Cures? Who is Kai Lung, that he should have a story? Is he
not known to us all here? Is not his speech that of this Province, his food
mean, his arms and legs unshaven? Does he carry a sword or wear silk raiment?
Frequently have we seen him fatigued with journeying; many times has he arrived
destitute of money; nor, on those occasions when a newly-appointed and
unnecessarily officious Mandarin has commanded him to betake himself elsewhere
and struck him with a rod has Kai Lung caused the stick to turn into a deadly
serpent and destroy its master, as did the just and dignified Lu Fei. How,
then, can Kai Lung have a story that is not also the story of Wang Yu and Hi
Seng, and all others here?”</p>
<p>“Indeed, if the refined and enlightened Wang Yu so decides, it must
assuredly be true,” said Kai Lung patiently; “yet (since even
trifles serve to dispel the darker thoughts of existence) would not the history
of so small a matter as an opium pipe chain his intelligent consideration? such
a pipe, for example, as this person beheld only today exposed for sale, the
bowl composed of the finest red clay, delicately baked and fashioned, the long
bamboo stem smoother than the sacred tooth of the divine Buddha, the spreading
support patiently and cunningly carved with scenes representing the Seven Joys,
and the Tenth Hell of unbelievers.”</p>
<p>“Ah!” exclaimed Wang Yu eagerly, “it is indeed as you say, a
Mandarin among masterpieces. That pipe, O most unobserving Kai Lung, is the
work of this retiring and superficial person who is now addressing you, and,
though the fact evidently escaped your all-seeing glance, the place where it is
exposed is none other than his shop of ‘The Fountain of Beauty,’
which you have on many occasions endowed with your honourable presence.”</p>
<p>“Doubtless the carving is the work of the accomplished Wang Yu, and the
fitting together,” replied Kai Lung; “but the materials for so
refined and ornamental a production must of necessity have been brought many
thousand li; the clay perhaps from the renowned beds of Honan, the wood from
Peking, and the bamboo from one of the great forests of the North.”</p>
<p>“For what reason?” said Wang Yu proudly. “At this
person’s very door is a pit of red clay, purer and infinitely more
regular than any to be found at Honan; the hard wood of Wu-whei is extolled
among carvers throughout the Empire, while no bamboo is straighter or more
smooth than that which grows in the neighbouring woods.”</p>
<p>“O most inconsistent Wang Yu!” cried the story-teller,
“assuredly a very commendable local pride has dimmed your usually
penetrating eyesight. Is not the clay pit of which you speak that in which you
fashioned exceedingly unsymmetrical imitations of rat-pies in your childhood?
How, then, can it be equal to those of Honan, which you have never seen? In the
dark glades of these woods have you not chased the gorgeous butterfly, and, in
later years, the no less gaily attired maidens of Wu-whei in the entrancing
game of Kiss in the Circle? Have not the bamboo-trees to which you have
referred provided you with the ideal material wherewith to roof over those
cunningly-constructed pits into which it has ever been the chief delight of the
young and audacious to lure dignified and unnaturally stout Mandarins? All
these things you have seen and used ever since your mother made a successful
offering to the Goddess Kum-Fa. How, then, can they be even equal to the
products of remote Honan and fabulous Peking? Assuredly the generally veracious
Wang Yu speaks this time with closed eyes and will, upon mature reflexion, eat
his words.”</p>
<p>The silence was broken by a very aged man who arose from among the bystanders.</p>
<p>“Behold the length of this person’s pigtail,” he exclaimed,
“the whiteness of his moustaches and the venerable appearance of his
beard! There is no more aged person present—if, indeed, there be such a
one in all the Province. It accordingly devolves upon him to speak in this
matter, which shall be as follows: The noble-minded and proficient Kai Lung
shall relate the story as he has proposed, and the garrulous Wang Yu shall
twice contribute to Kai Lung’s bowl when it is passed round, once for
himself and once for this person, in order that he may learn either to be more
discreet or more proficient in the art of aptly replying.”</p>
<p>“The events which it is this person’s presumptuous intention to
describe to this large-hearted and providentially indulgent gathering,”
began Kai Lung, when his audience had become settled, and the wooden bowl had
passed to and fro among them, “did not occupy many years, although they
were of a nature which made them of far more importance than all the remainder
of his existence, thereby supporting the sage discernment of the philosopher
Wen-weng, who first made the observation that man is greatly inferior to the
meanest fly, inasmuch as that creature, although granted only a day’s
span of life, contrives during that period to fulfil all the allotted functions
of existence.</p>
<p>“Unutterably to the astonishment and dismay of this person and all those
connected with him (for several of the most expensive readers of the future to
be found in the Empire had declared that his life would be marked by great
events, his career a source of continual wonder, and his death a misfortune to
those who had dealings with him) his efforts to take a degree at the public
literary competitions were not attended with any adequate success. In view of
the plainly expressed advice of his father it therefore became desirable that
this person should turn his attention to some other method of regaining the
esteem of those upon whom he was dependent for all the necessaries of
existence. Not having the means wherewith to engage in any form of commerce,
and being entirely ignorant of all matters save the now useless details of
attempting to pass public examinations, he reluctantly decided that he was
destined to become one of those who imagine and write out stories and similar
devices for printed leaves and books.</p>
<p>“This determination was favourably received, and upon learning it, this
person’s dignified father took him aside, and with many assurances of
regard presented to him a written sentence, which, he said, would be of
incomparable value to one engaged in a literary career, and should in fact,
without any particular qualifications, insure an honourable competency. He
himself, he added, with what at the time appeared to this one as an unnecessary
regard for detail, having taken a very high degree, and being in consequence
appointed to a distinguished and remunerative position under the Board of Fines
and Tortures, had never made any use of it.</p>
<p>“The written sentence, indeed, was all that it had been pronounced. It
had been composed by a remote ancestor, who had spent his entire life in
crystallizing all his knowledge and experience into a few written lines, which
as a result became correspondingly precious. It defined in a very original and
profound manner several undisputable principles, and was so engagingly subtle
in its manner of expression that the most superficial person was irresistibly
thrown into a deep inward contemplation upon reading it. When it was complete,
the person who had contrived this ingenious masterpiece, discovering by means
of omens that he still had ten years to live, devoted each remaining year to
the task of reducing the sentence by one word without in any way altering its
meaning. This unapproachable example of conciseness found such favour in the
eyes of those who issue printed leaves that as fast as this person could
inscribe stories containing it they were eagerly purchased; and had it not been
for a very incapable want of foresight on this narrow-minded individual’s
part, doubtless it would still be affording him an agreeable and permanent
means of living.</p>
<p>“Unquestionably the enlightened Wen-weng was well acquainted with the
subject when he exclaimed, ‘Better a frugal dish of olives flavoured with
honey than the most sumptuously devised puppy-pie of which the greater portion
is sent forth in silver-lined boxes and partaken of by others.’ At that
time, however, this versatile saying—which so gracefully conveys the
truth of the undeniable fact that what a person possesses is sufficient if he
restrain his mind from desiring aught else—would have been lightly
treated by this self-conceited story-teller even if his immature faculties had
enabled him fully to understand the import of so profound and well-digested a
remark.</p>
<p>“At that time Tiao Ts’un was undoubtedly the most beautiful maiden
in all Peking. So frequently were the verses describing her habits and
appearances affixed in the most prominent places of the city, that many persons
obtained an honourable livelihood by frequenting those spots and disposing of
the sacks of written papers which they collected to merchants who engaged in
that commerce. Owing to the fame attained by his written sentence, this really
very much inferior being had many opportunities of meeting the incomparable
maiden Tiao at flower-feasts, melon-seed assemblies, and those gatherings where
persons of both sexes exhibit themselves in revolving attitudes, and are
permitted to embrace openly without reproach; whereupon he became so
subservient to her charms and virtues that he lost no opportunity of making
himself utterly unendurable to any who might chance to speak to, or even gaze
upon, this Heaven-sent creature.</p>
<p>“So successful was this person in his endeavour to meet the sublime Tiao
and to gain her conscientious esteem that all emotions of prudence forsook him,
or it would soon have become apparent even to his enfeebled understanding that
such consistent good fortune could only be the work of unforgiving and
malignant spirits whose ill-will he had in some way earned, and who were luring
him on in order that they might accomplish his destruction. That object was
achieved on a certain evening when this person stood alone with Tiao upon an
eminence overlooking the city and watched the great sky-lantern rise from
behind the hills. Under these delicate and ennobling influences he gave speech
to many very ornamental and refined thoughts which arose within his mind
concerning the graceful brilliance of the light which was cast all around, yet
notwithstanding which a still more exceptional and brilliant light was shining
in his own internal organs by reason of the nearness of an even purer and more
engaging orb. There was no need, this person felt, to hide even his most inside
thoughts from the dignified and sympathetic being at his side, so without
hesitation he spoke—in what he believes even now must have been a very
decorative manner—of the many thousand persons who were then wrapped in
sleep, of the constantly changing lights which appeared in the city beneath,
and of the vastness which everywhere lay around.</p>
<p>“‘O Kai Lung,’ exclaimed the lovely Tiao, when this person
had made an end of speaking, ‘how expertly and in what a proficient
manner do you express yourself, uttering even the sentiments which this person
has felt inwardly, but for which she has no words. Why, indeed, do you not
inscribe them in a book?’</p>
<p>“Under her elevating influence it had already occurred to this illiterate
individual that it would be a more dignified and, perhaps, even a more
profitable course for him to write out and dispose of, to those who print such
matters, the versatile and high-minded expressions which now continually formed
his thoughts, rather than be dependent upon the concise sentence for which,
indeed, he was indebted to the wisdom of a remote ancestor. Tiao’s spoken
word fully settled his determination, so that without delay he set himself to
the task of composing a story which should omit the usual sentence, but should
contain instead a large number of his most graceful and diamond-like thoughts.
So engrossed did this near-sighted and superficial person become in the task
(which daily seemed to increase rather than lessen as new and still more
sublime images arose within his mind) that many months passed before the matter
was complete. In the end, instead of a story, it had assumed the proportions of
an important and many-volumed book; while Tiao had in the meantime accepted the
wedding gifts of an objectionable and excessively round-bodied individual, who
had amassed an inconceivable number of taels by inducing persons to take part
in what at first sight appeared to be an ingenious but very easy competition
connected with the order in which certain horses should arrive at a given and
clearly defined spot. By that time, however, this unduly sanguine story-teller
had become completely entranced in his work, and merely regarded
Tiao-Ts’un as a Heaven-sent but no longer necessary incentive to his
success. With every hope, therefore, he went forth to dispose of his written
leaves, confident of finding some very wealthy person who would be in a
condition to pay him the correct value of the work.</p>
<p>“At the end of two years this somewhat disillusionized but still
undaunted person chanced to hear of a benevolent and unassuming body of men who
made a habit of issuing works in which they discerned merit, but which,
nevertheless, others were unanimous in describing as ‘of no good.’
Here this person was received with gracious effusion, and being in a position
to impress those with whom he was dealing with his undoubted knowledge of the
subject, he finally succeeded in making a very advantageous arrangement by
which he was to pay one-half of the number of taels expended in producing the
work, and to receive in return all the profits which should result from the
undertaking. Those who were concerned in the matter were so engagingly
impressed with the incomparable literary merit displayed in the production that
they counselled a great number of copies being made ready in order, as they
said, that this person should not lose by there being any delay when once the
accomplishment became the one topic of conversation in tea-houses and yamens.
From this cause it came about that the matter of taels to be expended was much
greater than had been anticipated at the beginning, so that when the day
arrived on which the volumes were to be sent forth this person found that
almost his last piece of money had disappeared.</p>
<p>“Alas! how small a share has a person in the work of controlling his own
destiny. Had only the necessarily penurious and now almost degraded Kai Lung
been born a brief span before the great writer Lo Kuan Chang, his name would
have been received with every mark of esteem from one end of the Empire to the
other, while taels and honourable decorations would have been showered upon
him. For the truth, which could no longer be concealed, revealed the fact that
this inopportune individual possessed a mind framed in such a manner that his
thoughts had already been the thoughts of the inspired Lo Kuan, who, as this
person would not be so presumptuous as to inform this ornamental and
well-informed gathering, was the most ingenious and versatile-minded composer
of written words that this Empire—and therefore the entire
world—has seen, as, indeed, his honourable title of ‘The Many-hued
Mandarin Duck of the Yang-tse’ plainly indicates.</p>
<p>“Although this self-opinionated person had frequently been greatly
surprised himself during the writing of his long work by the brilliance and
manysidedness of the thoughts and metaphors which arose in his mind without
conscious effort, it was not until the appearance of the printed leaves which
make a custom of warning persons against being persuaded into buying certain
books that he definitely understood how all these things had been fully
expressed many dynasties ago by the all-knowing Lo Kuan Chang, and formed,
indeed, the great national standard of unapproachable excellence.
Unfortunately, this person had been so deeply engrossed all his life in
literary pursuits that he had never found an opportunity to glance at the works
in question, or he would have escaped the embarrassing position in which he now
found himself.</p>
<p>“It was with a hopeless sense of illness of ease that this unhappy one
reached the day on which the printed leaves already alluded to would make known
their deliberate opinion of his writing, the extremity of his hope being that
some would at least credit him with honourable motives, and perhaps a knowledge
that if the inspired Lo Kuan Chan had never been born the entire matter might
have been brought to a very different conclusion. Alas! only one among the many
printed leaves which made reference to the venture contained any words of
friendship or encouragement. This benevolent exception was sent forth from a
city in the extreme Northern Province of the Empire, and contained many
inspiring though delicately guarded messages of hope for the one to whom they
gracefully alluded as ‘this undoubtedly youthful, but nevertheless,
distinctly promising writer of books.’ While admitting that altogether
they found the production undeniably tedious, they claimed to have discovered
indications of an obvious talent, and therefore they unhesitatingly counselled
the person in question to take courage at the prospect of a moderate competency
which was certainly within his grasp if he restrained his somewhat
over-ambitious impulses and closely observed the simple subjects and manner of
expression of their own Chang Chow, whose ‘Lines to a Wayside
Chrysanthemum,’ ‘Mongolians who Have,’ and several other
composed pieces, they then set forth. Although it became plain that the writer
of this amiably devised notice was, like this incapable person, entirely
unacquainted with the masterpieces of Lo Kuan Chang, yet the indisputable fact
remained that, entirely on its merit, the work had been greeted with undoubted
enthusiasm, so that after purchasing many examples of the refined printed leaf
containing it, this person sat far into the night continually reading over the
one unprejudiced and discriminating expression.</p>
<p>“All the other printed leaves displayed a complete absence of good taste
in dealing with the matter. One boldly asserted that the entire circumstance
was the outcome of a foolish jest or wager on the part of a person who
possessed a million taels; another predicted that it was a cunning and
elaborately thought-out method of obtaining the attention of the people on the
part of certain persons who claimed to vend a reliable and fragrantly-scented
cleansing substance. The <i>Valley of Hoang Rose Leaves and Sweetness</i>
hoped, in a spirit of no sincerity, that the ingenious Kai Lung would not rest
on his tea-leaves, but would soon send forth an equally entertaining amended
example of the <i>Sayings of Confucious</i> and other sacred works, while the
<i>Pure Essence of the Seven Days’ Happenings</i> merely printed side by
side portions from the two books under the large inscription, ‘I<small>S
THERE REALLY ANY</small> N<small>EED FOR</small> U<small>S TO EXPRESS</small>
O<small>URSELVES MORE CLEARLY</small>?’</p>
<p>“The disappointment both as regards public esteem and taels—for,
after the manner in which the work had been received by those who advise on
such productions, not a single example was purchased—threw this
ill-destined individual into a condition of most unendurable depression, from
which he was only aroused by a remarkable example of the unfailing wisdom of
the proverb which says ‘Before hastening to secure a possible reward of
five taels by dragging an unobservant person away from a falling building,
examine well his features lest you find, when too late, that it is one to whom
you are indebted for double that amount.’ Disappointed in the hope of
securing large gains from the sale of his great work, this person now turned
his attention again to his former means of living, only to find, however, that
the discredit in which he had become involved even attached itself to his
concise sentence; for in place of the remunerative and honourable manner in
which it was formerly received, it was now regarded on all hands with open
suspicion. Instead of meekly kow-towing to an evidently pre-arranged doom, the
last misfortune aroused this usually resigned story-teller to an ungovernable
frenzy. Regarding the accomplished but at the same time exceedingly
over-productive Lo Kuan Chang as the beginning of all his evils, he took a
solemn oath as a mark of disapproval that he had not been content to inscribe
on paper only half of his brilliant thoughts, leaving the other half for the
benefit of this hard-striving and equally well-endowed individual, in which
case there would have been a sufficiency of taels and of fame for both.</p>
<p>“For a very considerable space of time this person could conceive no
method by which he might attain his object. At length, however, as a result of
very keen and subtle intellectual searching, and many well-selected sacrifices,
it was conveyed by means of a dream that one very ingenious yet simple way was
possible. The renowned and universally-admired writings of the distinguished Lo
Kuan for the most part take their action within a few dynasties of their
creator’s own time: all that remained for this inventive person to
accomplish, therefore, was to trace out the entire matter, making the words and
speeches to proceed from the mouths of those who existed in still earlier
periods. By this crafty method it would at once appear as though the
not-too-original Lo Kuan had been indebted to one who came before him for all
his most subtle thoughts, and, in consequence, his tomb would become
dishonoured and his memory execrated. Without any delay this person cheerfully
set himself to the somewhat laborious task before him. Lo Kuan’s
well-known exclamation of the Emperor Tsing on the battlefield of Shih-ho,
‘A sedan-chair! a sedan-chair! This person will unhesitatingly exchange
his entire and well-regulated Empire for such an article,’ was attributed
to an Emperor who lived several thousand years before the treacherous and
unpopular Tsing. The new matter of a no less frequently quoted portion ran:
‘O nobly intentioned but nevertheless exceedingly morose Tung-shin, the
object before you is your distinguished and evilly-disposed-of father’s
honourably-inspired demon,’ the change of a name effecting whatever
alteration was necessary; while the delicately-imagined speech beginning
‘The person who becomes amused at matters resulting from double-edged
knives has assuredly never felt the effect of a well-directed blow
himself’ was taken from the mouth of one person and placed in that of one
of his remote ancestors. In such a manner, without in any great degree altering
the matter of Lo Kuan’s works, all the scenes and persons introduced were
transferred to much earlier dynasties than those affected by the incomparable
writer himself, the final effect being to give an air of extreme unoriginality
to his really undoubtedly genuine conceptions.</p>
<p>“Satisfied with his accomplishment, and followed by a hired person of low
class bearing the writings, which, by nature of the research necessary in
fixing the various dates and places so that even the wary should be deceived,
had occupied the greater part of a year, this now fully confident
story-teller—unmindful of the well-tried excellence of the inspired
saying, ‘Money is hundred-footed; upon perceiving a tael lying apparently
unobserved upon the floor, do not lose the time necessary in stooping, but
quickly place your foot upon it, for one fails nothing in dignity thereby; but
should it be a gold piece, distrust all things, and valuing dignity but as an
empty name, cast your entire body upon it’—went forth to complete
his great task of finally erasing from the mind and records of the Empire the
hitherto venerated name of Lo Kuan Chang. Entering the place of commerce of the
one who seemed the most favourable for the purpose, he placed the facts as they
would in future be represented before him, explained the undoubtedly
remunerative fame that would ensue to all concerned in the enterprise of
sending forth the printed books in their new form, and, opening at a venture
the written leaves which he had brought with him, read out the following words
as an indication of the similarity of the entire work:</p>
<p>“‘<i>Whai-Keng</i>. Friends, Chinamen, labourers who are engaged in
agricultural pursuits, entrust to this person your acute and well-educated
ears;</p>
<p>“‘He has merely come to assist in depositing the body of
Ko’ung in the Family Temple, not for the purpose of making remarks about
him of a graceful and highly complimentary nature;</p>
<p>“‘The unremunerative actions of which persons may have been guilty
possess an exceedingly undesirable amount of endurance;</p>
<p>“‘The successful and well-considered almost invariably are involved
in a directly contrary course;</p>
<p>“‘This person desires nothing more than a like fate to await
Ko’ung.’</p>
<p>“When this one had read so far, he paused in order to give the other an
opportunity of breaking in and offering half his possessions to be allowed to
share in the undertaking. As he remained unaccountably silent, however, an
inelegant pause occurred which this person at length broke by desiring an
expressed opinion on the matter.</p>
<p>“‘O exceedingly painstaking, but nevertheless highly inopportune
Kai Lung,’ he replied at length, while in his countenance this person
read an expression of no-encouragement towards his venture, ‘all your
entrancing efforts do undoubtedly appear to attract the undesirable attention
of some spiteful and tyrannical demon. This closely-written and elaborately
devised work is in reality not worth the labour of a single stroke, nor is
there in all Peking a sender forth of printed leaves who would encourage any
project connected with its issue.’</p>
<p>“‘But the importance of such a fact as that which would clearly
show the hitherto venerated Lo Kuan Chang to be a person who passed off as his
own the work of an earlier one!’ cried this person in despair, well
knowing that the deliberately expressed opinion of the one before him was a
matter that would rule all others. ‘Consider the interest of the
discovery.’</p>
<p>“‘The interest would not demand more than a few lines in the
ordinary printed leaves,’ replied the other calmly. ‘Indeed, in a
manner of speaking, it is entirely a detail of no consequence whether or not
the sublime Lo Kuan ever existed. In reality his very commonplace name may have
been simply Lung; his inspired work may have been written a score of dynasties
before him by some other person, or they may have been composed by the
enlightened Emperor of the period, who desired to conceal the fact, yet these
matters would not for a moment engage the interest of any ordinary passer-by.
Lo Kuan Chang is not a person in the ordinary expression; he is an embodiment
of a distinguished and utterly unassailable national institution. The
Heaven-sent works with which he is, by general consent, connected form the
necessary unchangeable standard of literary excellence, and remain for ever
above rivalry and above mistrust. For this reason the matter is plainly one
which does not interest this person.’</p>
<p>“In the course of a not uneventful existence this self-deprecatory person
has suffered many reverses and disappointments. During his youth the
high-minded Empress on one occasion stopped and openly complimented him on the
dignified outline presented by his body in profile, and when he was relying
upon this incident to secure him a very remunerative public office, a jealous
and powerful Mandarin substituted a somewhat similar, though really very much
inferior, person for him at the interview which the Empress had commanded.
Frequently in matters of commerce which have appeared to promise very
satisfactorily at the beginning this person has been induced to entrust sums of
money to others, when he had hoped from the indications and the manner of
speaking that the exact contrary would be the case; and in one instance he was
released at a vast price from the torture dungeon in Canton—where he had
been thrown by the subtle and unconscientious plots of one who could not relate
stories in so accurate and unvarying a manner as himself—on the day
before that on which all persons were freely set at liberty on account of
exceptional public rejoicing. Yet in spite of these and many other very
unendurable incidents, this impetuous and ill-starred being never felt so great
a desire to retire to a solitary place and there disfigure himself permanently
as a mark of his unfeigned internal displeasure, as on the occasion when he
endured extreme poverty and great personal inconvenience for an entire year in
order that he might take away face from the memory of a person who was so
placed that no one expressed any interest in the matter.</p>
<p>“Since then this very ill-clad and really necessitous person has devoted
himself to the honourable but exceedingly arduous and in general unremunerative
occupation of story-telling. To this he would add nothing save that not
infrequently a nobly-born and highly-cultured audience is so entranced with his
commonplace efforts to hold the attention, especially when a story not hitherto
known has been related, that in order to afford it an opportunity of expressing
its gratification, he has been requested to allow another offering to be made
by all persons present at the conclusion of the entertainment.”</p>
<h2><SPAN name="link2HCH0006" id="link2HCH0006"></SPAN> VI.<br/> THE VENGEANCE OF TUNG FEL</h2>
<p>For a period not to be measured by days or weeks the air of Ching-fow had been
as unrestful as that of the locust plains beyond the Great Wall, for every
speech which passed bore two faces, one fair to hear, as a greeting, but the
other insidiously speaking behind a screen, of rebellion, violence, and the
hope of overturning the fixed order of events. With those whom they did not
mistrust of treachery persons spoke in low voices of definite plans, while at
all times there might appear in prominent places of the city skilfully composed
notices setting forth great wrongs and injustices towards which resignation and
a lowly bearing were outwardly counselled, yet with the same words cunningly
inflaming the minds, even of the patient, as no pouring out of passionate
thoughts and undignified threatenings could have done. Among the people,
unknown, unseen, and unsuspected, except to the proved ones to whom they
desired to reveal themselves, moved the agents of the Three Societies. While to
the many of Ching-fow nothing was desired or even thought of behind the
downfall of their own officials, and, chief of all, the execution of the
evil-minded and depraved Mandarin Ping Siang, whose cruelties and extortions
had made his name an object of wide and deserved loathing, the agents only
regarded the city as a bright spot in the line of blood and fire which they
were fanning into life from Peking to Canton, and which would presumably burst
forth and involve the entire Empire.</p>
<p>Although it had of late become a plain fact, by reason of the manner of
behaving of the people, that events of a sudden and turbulent nature could not
long be restrained, yet outwardly there was no exhibition of violence, not even
to the length of resisting those whom Ping Siang sent to enforce his unjust
demands, chiefly because a well-founded whisper had been sent round that
nothing was to be done until Tung Fel should arrive, which would not be until
the seventh day in the month of Winged Dragons. To this all persons agreed, for
the more aged among them, who, by virtue of their years, were also the formers
of opinion in all matters, called up within their memories certain events
connected with the two persons in question which appeared to give to Tung Fel
the privilege of expressing himself clearly when the matter of finally dealing
with the malicious and self-willed Mandarin should be engaged upon.</p>
<p>Among the mountains which enclose Ching-fow on the southern side dwelt a
jade-seeker, who also kept goats. Although a young man and entirely without
relations, he had, by patient industry, contrived to collect together a large
flock of the best-formed and most prolific goats to be found in the
neighbourhood, all the money which he received in exchange for jade being
quickly bartered again for the finest animals which he could obtain. He was
dauntless in penetrating to the most inaccessible parts of the mountains in
search of the stone, unfailing in his skilful care of the flock, in which he
took much honourable pride, and on all occasions discreet and unassumingly
restrained in his discourse and manner of life. Knowing this to be his
invariable practice, it was with emotions of an agreeable curiosity that on the
seventh day of the month of Winged Dragons those persons who were passing from
place to place in the city beheld this young man, Yang Hu, descending the
mountain path with unmistakable signs of profound agitation, and an entire
absence of prudent care. Following him closely to the inner square of the city,
on the continually expressed plea that they themselves had business in that
quarter, these persons observed Yang Hu take up a position of unendurable
dejection as he gazed reproachfully at the figure of the all-knowing Buddha
which surmounted the Temple where it was his custom to sacrifice.</p>
<p>“Alas!” he exclaimed, lifting up his voice, when it became plain
that a large number of people was assembled awaiting his words, “to what
end does a person strive in this excessively evilly-regulated district? Or is
it that this obscure and ill-destined one alone is marked out as with a deep
white cross for humiliation and ruin? Father, and Sacred Temple of Ancestral
Virtues, wherein the meanest can repose their trust, he has none; while now,
being more destitute than the beggar at the gate, the hope of honourable
marriage and a robust family of sons is more remote than the chance of finding
the miracle-working Crystal Image which marks the last footstep of the Pure
One. Yesterday this person possessed no secret store of silver or gold, nor had
he knowledge of any special amount of jade hidden among the mountains, but to
his call there responded four score goats, the most select and majestic to be
found in all the Province, of which, nevertheless, it was his yearly custom to
sacrifice one, as those here can testify, and to offer another as a duty to the
Yamen of Ping Siang, in neither case opening his eyes widely when the hour for
selecting arrived. Yet in what an unseemly manner is his respectful piety and
courteous loyalty rewarded! To-day, before this person went forth on his usual
quest, there came those bearing written papers by which they claimed, on the
authority of Ping Siang, the whole of this person’s flock, as a
punishment and fine for his not contributing without warning to the Celebration
of Kissing the Emperor’s Face—the very obligation of such a matter
being entirely unknown to him. Nevertheless, those who came drove off this
person’s entire wealth, the desperately won increase of a life full of
great toil and uncomplainingly endured hardship, leaving him only his cave in
the rocks, which even the most grasping of many-handed Mandarins cannot remove,
his cloak of skins, which no beggar would gratefully receive, and a bright and
increasing light of deep hate scorching within his mind which nothing but the
blood of the obdurate extortioner can efficiently quench. No protection of
charms or heavily-mailed bowmen shall avail him, for in his craving for just
revenge this person will meet witchcraft with a Heaven-sent cause and oppose an
unsleeping subtlety against strength. Therefore let not the innocent suffer
through an insufficient understanding, O Divine One, but direct the hand of
your faithful worshipper towards the heart that is proud in tyranny, and holds
as empty words the clearly defined promise of an all-seeing justice.”</p>
<p>Scarcely had Yang Hu made an end of speaking before there happened an event
which could be regarded in no other light than as a direct answer to his
plainly expressed request for a definite sign. Upon the clear air, which had
become unnaturally still at Yang Hu’s words, as though to remove any
chance of doubt that this indeed was the requested answer, came the loud
beating of many very powerful brass gongs, indicating the approach of some
person of undoubted importance. In a very brief period the procession reached
the square, the gong-beaters being followed by persons carrying banners, bowmen
in armour, others bearing various weapons and instruments of torture, slaves
displaying innumerable changes of raiment to prove the rank and consequence of
their master, umbrella carriers and fan wavers, and finally, preceded by
incense burners and surrounded by servants who cleared away all obstructions by
means of their formidable and heavily knotted lashes, the unworthy and
deceitful Mandarin Ping Siang, who sat in a silk-hung and elaborately wrought
chair, looking from side to side with gestures and expressions of contempt and
ill-restrained cupidity.</p>
<p>At the sign of this powerful but unscrupulous person all those who were present
fell upon their faces, leaving a broad space in their midst, except Yang Hu,
who stepped back into the shadow of a doorway, being resolved that he would not
prostrate himself before one whom Heaven had pointed out as the proper object
of his just vengeance.</p>
<p>When the chair of Ping Siang could no longer be observed in the distance, and
the sound of his many gongs had died away, all the persons who had knelt at his
approach rose to their feet, meeting each other’s eyes with glances of
assured and profound significance. At length there stepped forth an exceedingly
aged man, who was generally believed to have the power of reading omens and
forecasting futures, so that at his upraised hand all persons became silent.</p>
<p>“Behold!” he exclaimed, “none can turn aside in doubt from
the deliberately pointed finger of Buddha. Henceforth, in spite of the
well-intentioned suggestions of those who would shield him under the plea of
exacting orders from high ones at Peking or extortions practised by slaves
under him of which he is ignorant, there can no longer be any two voices
concerning the guilty one. Yet what does the knowledge of the cormorant’s
cry avail the golden carp in the shallow waters of the Yuen-Kiang? A prickly
mormosa is an adequate protection against a naked man armed only with a just
cause, and a company of bowmen has been known to quench an entire city’s
Heaven-felt desire for retribution. This person, and doubtless others also,
would have experienced a more heartfelt enthusiasm in the matter if the sublime
and omnipotent Buddha had gone a step further, and pointed out not only the one
to be punished, but also the instrument by which the destiny could be prudently
and effectively accomplished.”</p>
<p>From the mountain path which led to Yang Hu’s cave came a voice, like an
expressly devised reply to this speech. It was that of some person uttering the
“Chant of Rewards and Penalties”:</p>
<p class="letter">
“How strong is the mountain sycamore!<br/>
“Its branches reach the Middle Air, and the eye of none can pierce
its foliage;<br/>
“It draws power and nourishment from all around, so that weeds alone
may flourish under its shadow.<br/>
“Robbers find safety within the hollow of its trunk; its branches
hide vampires and all manner of evil things which prey upon the innocent;<br/>
“The wild boar of the forest sharpen their tusks against the bark,
for it is harder than flint, and the axe of the woodsman turns back upon the
striker.<br/>
“Then cries the sycamore, ‘Hail and rain have no power against
me, nor can the fiercest sun penetrate beyond my outside fringe;<br/>
“‘The man who impiously raises his hand against me falls by his
own stroke and weapon.<br/>
“‘Can there be a greater or a more powerful than this one?
Assuredly, <i>I</i> am Buddha; let all things obey me.’<br/>
“Whereupon the weeds bow their heads, whispering among themselves,
‘The voice of the Tall One we hear, but not that of Buddha. Indeed, it is
doubtless as he says.’<br/>
“In his musk-scented Heaven Buddha laughs, and not deigning to raise
his head from the lap of the Phœnix Goddess, he thrusts forth a stone which
lies by his foot.<br/>
“Saying, ‘A god’s present for a god. Take it carefully, O
presumptuous Little One, for it is hot to the touch.’<br/>
“The thunderbolt falls and the mighty tree is rent in twain.
‘They asked for my messenger,’ said the Pure One, turning again to
repose.<br/>
“<i>Lo, he comes</i>!”</p>
<p>With the last spoken word there came into the sight of those who were collected
together a person of stern yet engaging appearance. His hands and face were the
colour of mulberry stain by long exposure to the sun, while his eyes looked
forth like two watch-fires outside a wolf-haunted camp. His long pigtail was
tangled with the binding tendrils of the forest, and damp with the dew of an
open couch. His apparel was in no way striking or brilliant, yet he strode with
the dignity and air of a high official, pushing before him a covered box upon
wheels.</p>
<p>“It is Tung Fel!” cried many who stood there watching his approach,
in tones which showed those who spoke to be inspired by a variety of impressive
emotions. “Undoubtedly this is the seventh day of the month of Winged
Dragons, and, as he specifically stated would be the case, lo! he has
come.”</p>
<p>Few were the words of greeting which Tung Fel accorded even to the most
venerable of those who awaited him.</p>
<p>“This person has slept, partaken of fruit and herbs, and devoted an
allotted time to inward contemplation,” he said briefly. “Other and
more weighty matters than the exchange of dignified compliments and the
admiration of each other’s profiles remain to be accomplished. What, for
example, is the significance of the written parchment which is displayed in so
obtrusive a manner before our eyes? Bring it to this person without
delay.”</p>
<p>At these words all those present followed Tung Fel’s gaze with
astonishment, for conspicuously displayed upon the wall of the Temple was a
written notice which all joined in asserting had not been there the moment
before, though no man had approached the spot. Nevertheless it was quickly
brought to Tung Fel, who took it without any fear or hesitation and read aloud
the words which it contained.</p>
<p class="center">
“TO THE CUSTOM-RESPECTING PERSONS OF CHING-FOW.</p>
<p>“Truly the span of existence of any upon this earth is brief and not to
be considered; therefore, O unfortunate dwellers of Ching-fow, let it not
affect your digestion that your bodies are in peril of sudden and most
excruciating tortures and your Family Temples in danger of humiliating
disregard.</p>
<p>“Why do your thoughts follow the actions of the noble Mandarin Ping Siang
so insidiously, and why after each unjust exaction do your eyes look redly
towards the Yamen?</p>
<p>“Is he not the little finger of those at Peking, obeying their commands
and only carrying out the taxation which others have devised? Indeed, he
himself has stated such to be the fact. If, therefore, a terrible and
unforeseen fate overtook the usually cautious and well-armed Ping Siang,
doubtless—perhaps after the lapse of some considerable time—another
would be sent from Peking for a like purpose, and in this way, after a
too-brief period of heaven-sent rest and prosperity, affairs would regulate
themselves into almost as unendurable a condition as before.</p>
<p>“Therefore ponder these things well, O passer-by. Yesterday the only
man-child of Huang the wood-carver was taken away to be sold into slavery by
the emissaries of the most just Ping Siang (who would not have acted thus, we
are assured, were it not for the insatiable ones at Peking), as it had become
plain that the very necessitous Huang had no other possession to contribute to
the amount to be expended in coloured lights as a mark of public rejoicing on
the occasion of the moonday of the sublime Emperor. The illiterate and
prosaic-minded Huang, having in a most unseemly manner reviled and even
assailed those who acted in the matter, has been effectively disposed of, and
his wife now alternately laughs and shrieks in the Establishment of Irregular
Intellects.</p>
<p>“For this reason, gazer, and because the matter touches you more closely
than, in your self-imagined security, you are prone to think, deal expediently
with the time at your disposal. Look twice and lingeringly to-night upon the
face of your first-born, and clasp the form of your favourite one in a closer
embrace, for he by whose hand the blow is directed may already have cast
devouring eyes upon their fairness, and to-morrow he may say to his armed men:
‘The time is come; bring her to me.’”</p>
<p>“From the last sentence of the well-intentioned and undoubtedly
moderately-framed notice this person will take two phrases,” remarked
Tung Fel, folding the written paper and placing it among his garments,
“which shall serve him as the title of the lifelike and
accurately-represented play which it is his self-conceited intention now to
disclose to this select and unprejudiced gathering. The scene represents an
enlightened and well-merited justice overtaking an arrogant and intolerable
being who—need this person add?—existed many dynasties ago, and the
title is:</p>
<p class="center">
“THE TIME IS COME!<br/>
BY WHOSE HAND?”</p>
<p>Delivering himself in this manner, Tung Fel drew back the hanging drapery which
concealed the front of his large box, and disclosed to those who were gathered
round, not, as they had expected, a passage from the Record of the Three
Kingdoms, or some other dramatic work of undoubted merit, but an ingeniously
constructed representation of a scene outside the walls of their own Ching-fow.
On one side was a small but minutely accurate copy of a wood-burner’s
hut, which was known to all present, while behind stood out the distant but
nevertheless unmistakable walls of the city. But it was the nearest part of the
spectacle that first held the attention of the entranced beholders, for there
disported themselves, in every variety of guileless and attractive attitude, a
number of young and entirely unconcerned doves. Scarcely had the delighted
onlookers fully observed the pleasing and effective scene, or uttered their
expressions of polished satisfaction at the graceful and unassuming behaviour
of the pretty creatures before them, than the view entirely changed, and, as if
by magic, the massive and inelegant building of Ping Siang’s Yamen was
presented before them. As all gazed, astonished, the great door of the Yamen
opened stealthily, and without a moment’s pause a lean and
ill-conditioned rat, of unnatural size and rapacity, dashed out and seized the
most select and engaging of the unsuspecting prey in its hungry jaws. With the
expiring cry of the innocent victim the entire box was immediately, and in the
most unexpected manner, involved in a profound darkness, which cleared away as
suddenly and revealed the forms of the despoiler and the victim lying dead by
each other’s side.</p>
<p>Tung Fel came forward to receive the well-selected compliments of all who had
witnessed the entertainment.</p>
<p>“It may be objected,” he remarked, “that the play is, in a
manner of expressing one’s self, incomplete; for it is unrevealed by
whose hand the act of justice was accomplished. Yet in this detail is the
accuracy of the representation justified, for though the time has come, the
hand by which retribution is accorded shall never be observed.”</p>
<p>In such a manner did Tung Fel come to Ching-fow on the seventh day of the month
of Winged Dragons, throwing aside all restraint, and no longer urging prudence
or delay. Of all the throng which stood before him scarcely one was without a
deep offence against Ping Siang, while those who had not as yet suffered feared
what the morrow might display.</p>
<p>A wandering monk from the Island of Irredeemable Plagues was the first to step
forth in response to Tung Fel’s plainly understood suggestion.</p>
<p>“There is no necessity for this person to undertake further acts of
benevolence,” he remarked, dropping the cloak from his shoulder and
displaying the hundred and eight scars of extreme virtue; “nor,” he
continued, holding up his left hand, from which three fingers were burnt away,
“have greater endurances been neglected. Yet the matter before this
distinguished gathering is one which merits the favourable consideration of all
persons, and this one will in no manner turn away, recounting former actions,
while he allows others to press forward towards the accomplishment of the just
and divinely-inspired act.”</p>
<p>With these words the devout and unassuming person in question inscribed his
name upon a square piece of rice-paper, attesting his sincerity to the fixed
purpose for which it was designed by dipping his thumb into the mixed blood of
the slain animals and impressing this unalterable seal upon the paper also. He
was followed by a seller of drugs and subtle medicines, whose entire stock had
been seized and destroyed by order of Ping Siang, so that no one in Ching-fow
might obtain poison for his destruction. Then came an overwhelming stream of
persons, all of whom had received some severe and well-remembered injury at the
hands of the malicious and vindictive Mandarin. All these followed a similar
observance, inscribing their names and binding themselves by the Blood Oath.
Last of all Yang Hu stepped up, partly from a natural modesty which restrained
him from offering himself when so many more versatile persons of proved
excellence were willing to engage in the matter, and partly because an
ill-advised conflict was taking place within his mind as to whether the extreme
course which was contemplated was the most expedient to pursue. At last,
however, he plainly perceived that he could not honourably withhold himself
from an affair that was in a measure the direct outcome of his own unendurable
loss, so that without further hesitation he added his obscure name to the many
illustrious ones already in Tung Fel’s keeping.</p>
<p>When at length dark fell upon the city and the cries of the watchmen, warning
all prudent ones to bar well their doors against robbers, as they themselves
were withdrawing until the morrow, no longer rang through the narrow ways of
Ching-fow, all those persons who had pledged themselves by name and seal went
forth silently, and came together at the place whereof Tung Fel had secretly
conveyed them knowledge. There Tung Fel, standing somewhat apart, placed all
the folded papers in the form of a circle, and having performed over them
certain observances designed to insure a just decision and to keep away evil
influences, submitted the selection to the discriminating choice of the Sacred
Flat and Round Sticks. Having in this manner secured the name of the appointed
person who should carry out the act of justice and retribution, Tung Fel
unfolded the paper, inscribed certain words upon it, and replaced it among the
others.</p>
<p>“The moment before great deeds,” began Tung Fel, stepping forward
and addressing himself to the expectant ones who were gathered round, “is
not the time for light speech, nor, indeed, for sentences of dignified length,
no matter how pleasantly turned to the ear they may be. Before this person
stand many who are undoubtedly illustrious in various arts and virtues, yet one
among them is pre-eminently marked out for distinction in that his name shall
be handed down in imperishable history as that of a patriot of a pure-minded
and uncompromising degree. With him there is no need of further speech, and to
this end I have inscribed certain words upon his namepaper. To everyone this
person will now return the paper which has been entrusted to him, folded so
that the nature of its contents shall be an unwritten leaf to all others. Nor
shall the papers be unfolded by any until he is within his own chamber, with
barred doors, where all, save the one who shall find the message, shall remain,
not venturing forth until daybreak. I, Tung Fel, have spoken, and assuredly I
shall not eat my word, which is that a certain and most degrading death awaits
any who transgress these commands.”</p>
<p>It was with the short and sudden breath of the cowering antelope when the
stealthy tread of the pitiless tiger approaches its lair, that Yang Hu opened
his paper in the seclusion of his own cave; for his mind was darkened with an
inspired inside emotion that he, the one doubting among the eagerly proffering
and destructively inclined multitude, would be chosen to accomplish the high
aim for which, indeed, he felt exceptionally unworthy. The written sentence
which he perceived immediately upon unfolding the paper, instructing him to
appear again before Tung Fel at the hour of midnight, was, therefore, nothing
but the echo and fulfilment of his own thoughts, and served in reality to
impress his mind with calmer feelings of dignified unconcern than would have
been the case had he not been chosen. Having neither possessions nor relations,
the occupation of disposing of his goods and making ceremonious and
affectionate leavetakings of his family, against the occurrence of any
unforeseen disaster, engrossed no portion of Yang Hu’s time. Yet there
was one matter to which no reference has yet been made, but which now forces
itself obtrusively upon the attention, which was in a large measure responsible
for many of the most prominent actions of Yang Hu’s life, and, indeed, in
no small degree influenced his hesitation in offering himself before Tung Fel.</p>
<p>Not a bowshot distance from the place where the mountain path entered the
outskirts of the city lived Hiya-ai-Shao with her parents, who were persons of
assured position, though of no particular wealth. For a period not confined to
a single year it had been the custom of Yang Hu to offer to this elegant and
refined maiden all the rarest pieces of jade which he could discover, while the
most symmetrical and remunerative she-goat in his flock enjoyed the honourable
distinction of bearing her incomparable name. Towards the almond garden of
Hiya’s abode Yang Hu turned his footsteps upon leaving his cave, and
standing there, concealed from all sides by the white and abundant flower-laden
foliage, he uttered a sound which had long been an agreed signal between them.
Presently a faint perfume of choo-lan spoke of her near approach, and without
delay Hiya herself stood by his side.</p>
<p>“Well-endowed one,” said Yang Hu, when at length they had gazed
upon each other’s features and made renewals of their protestations of
mutual regard, “the fixed intentions of a person have often been fitly
likened to the seed of the tree-peony, so ineffectual are their efforts among
the winds of constantly changing circumstance. The definite hope of this person
had long pointed towards a small but adequate habitation, surrounded by
sweet-smelling olive-trees and not far distant from the jade cliffs and
pastures which would afford a sufficient remuneration and a means of living.
This entrancing picture has been blotted out for the time, and in its place
this person finds himself face to face with an arduous and dangerous
undertaking, followed, perhaps, by hasty and immediate flight. Yet if the
adorable Hiya will prove the unchanging depths of her constantly expressed
intention by accompanying him as far as the village of Hing where suitable
marriage ceremonies can be observed without delay, the exile will in reality be
in the nature of a triumphal procession, and the emotions with which this
person has hitherto regarded the entire circumstance will undergo a complete
and highly accomplished change.”</p>
<p>“Oh, Yang!” exclaimed the maiden, whose feelings at hearing these
words were in no way different from those of her lover when he was on the point
of opening the folded paper upon which Tung Fel had written; “what is the
nature of the mission upon which you are so impetuously resolved? and why will
it be followed by flight?”</p>
<p>“The nature of the undertaking cannot be revealed by reason of a
deliberately taken oath,” replied Yang Hu; “and the reason of its
possible consequence is a less important question to the two persons who are
here conversing together than of whether the amiable and graceful Hiya is
willing to carry out her often-expressed desire for an opportunity of
displaying the true depths of her emotions towards this one.”</p>
<p>“Alas!” said Hiya, “the sentiments which this person
expressed with irreproachable honourableness when the sun was high in the
heavens and the probability of secretly leaving an undoubtedly well-appointed
home was engagingly remote, seem to have an entirely different significance
when recalled by night in a damp orchard, and on the eve of their fulfilment.
To deceive one’s parents is an ignoble prospect; furthermore, it is often
an exceedingly difficult undertaking. Let the matter be arranged in this way:
that Yang leaves the ultimate details of the scheme to Hiya’s expedient
care, he proceeding without delay to Hing, or, even more desirable, to the
further town of Liyunnan, and there awaiting her coming. By such means the risk
of discovery and pursuit will be lessened, Yang will be able to set forth on
his journey with greater speed, and this one will have an opportunity of
getting together certain articles without which, indeed, she would be very
inadequately equipped.”</p>
<p>In spite of his conscientious desire that Hiya should be by his side on the
journey, together with an unendurable certainty that evil would arise from the
course she proposed, Yang was compelled by an innate feeling of respect to
agree to her wishes, and in this manner the arrangement was definitely
concluded. Thereupon Hiya, without delay, returned to the dwelling, remarking
that otherwise her absence might be detected and the entire circumstance
thereby discovered, leaving Yang Hu to continue his journey and again present
himself before Tung Fel, as he had been instructed.</p>
<p>Tung Fel was engaged with brush and ink when Yang Hu entered. Round him were
many written parchments, some venerable with age, and a variety of other
matters, among which might be clearly perceived weapons, and devices for
reading the future. He greeted Yang with many tokens of dignified respect, and
with an evidently restrained emotion led him towards the light of a hanging
lantern, where he gazed into his face for a considerable period with every
indication of exceptional concern.</p>
<p>“Yang Hu,” he said at length, “at such a moment many dark and
searching thoughts may naturally arise in the mind concerning objects and
reasons, omens, and the moving cycle of events. Yet in all these, out of a
wisdom gained by deep endurance and a hardly-won experience beyond the common
lot, this person would say, Be content. The hand of destiny, though it may at
times appear to move in a devious manner, is ever approaching its appointed
aim. To this end were you chosen.”</p>
<p>“The choice was openly made by wise and proficient omens,” replied
Yang Hu, without any display of uncertainty of purpose, “and this person
is content.”</p>
<p>Tung Fel then administered to Yang the Oath of Buddha’s Face and the One
called the Unutterable (which may not be further described in written words)
thereby binding his body and soul, and the souls and repose of all who had gone
before him in direct line and all who should in a like manner follow after, to
the accomplishment of the design. All spoken matter being thus complete between
them, he gave him a mask with which he should pass unknown through the streets
and into the presence of Ping Siang, a variety of weapons to use as the
occasion arose, and a sign by which the attendants at the Yamen would admit him
without further questioning.</p>
<p>As Yang Hu passed through the streets of Ching-fow, which were in a great
measure deserted owing to the command of Tung Fel, he was aware of many
mournful and foreboding sounds which accompanied him on all sides, while
shadowy faces, bearing signs of intolerable anguish and despair, continually
formed themselves out of the wind. By the time he reached the Yamen a tempest
of exceptional violence was in progress, nor were other omens absent which
tended to indicate that matters of a very unpropitious nature were about to
take place.</p>
<p>At each successive door of the Yamen the attendant stepped back and covered his
face, so that he should by no chance perceive who had come upon so destructive
a mission, the instant Yang Hu uttered the sign with which Tung Fel had
provided him. In this manner Yang quickly reached the door of the inner chamber
upon which was inscribed: “Let the person who comes with a doubtful
countenance, unbidden, or meditating treachery, remember the curse and manner
of death which attended Lai Kuen, who slew the one over him; so shall he turn
and go forth in safety.” This unworthy safeguard at the hands of a person
who passed his entire life in altering the fixed nature of justice, and who
never went beyond his outer gate without an armed company of bowmen, inspired
Yang Hu with so incautious a contempt, that without any hesitation he drew
forth his brush and ink, and in a spirit of bitter signification added the
words, “‘Come, let us eat together,’ said the wolf to the
she-goat.”</p>
<p>Being now within a step of Ping Siang and the completion of his undertaking,
Yang Hu drew tighter the cords of his mask, tested and proved his weapons, and
then, without further delay, threw open the door before him and stepped into
the chamber, barring the door quickly so that no person might leave or enter
without his consent.</p>
<p>At this interruption and manner of behaving, which clearly indicated the nature
of the errand upon which the person before him had come, Ping Siang rose from
his couch and stretched out his hand towards a gong which lay beside him.</p>
<p>“All summonses for aid are now unavailing, Ping Siang,” exclaimed
Yang, without in any measure using delicate or set phrases of speech;
“for, as you have doubtless informed yourself, the slaves of tyrants are
the first to welcome the downfall of their lord.”</p>
<p>“The matter of your speech is as emptiness to this person,” replied
the Mandarin, affecting with extreme difficulty an appearance of no-concern.
“In what manner has he fallen? And how will the depraved and self-willed
person before him avoid the well-deserved tortures which certainly await him in
the public square on the morrow, as the reward of his intolerable
presumptions?”</p>
<p>“O Mandarin,” cried Yang Hu, “the fitness and occasion for
such speeches as the one to which you have just given utterance lie as far
behind you as the smoke of yesterday’s sacrifice. With what manner of
eyes have you frequently journeyed through Ching-fow of late, if the signs and
omens there have not already warned you to prepare a coffin adequately designed
to receive your well-proportioned body? Has not the pungent vapour of burning
houses assailed your senses at every turn, or the salt tears from the eyes of
forlorn ones dashed your peach-tea and spiced foods with bitterness?”</p>
<p>“Alas!” exclaimed Ping Siang, “this person now certainly
begins to perceive that many things which he has unthinkingly allowed would
present a very unendurable face to others.”</p>
<p>“In such a manner has it appeared to all Ching-fow,” said Yang Hu;
“and the justice of your death has been universally admitted. Even should
this one fail there would be an innumerable company eager to take his place.
Therefore, O Ping Siang, as the only favour which it is within this
person’s power to accord, select that which in your opinion is the most
agreeable manner and weapon for your end.”</p>
<p>“It is truly said that at the Final Gate of the Two Ways the necessity
for elegant and well-chosen sentences ends,” remarked Ping Siang with a
sigh, “otherwise the manner of your address would be open to reproach. By
your side this person perceives a long and apparently highly-tempered sword,
which, in his opinion, will serve the purpose efficiently. Having no remarks of
an improving but nevertheless exceedingly tedious nature with which to imprint
the occasion for the benefit of those who come after, his only request is that
the blow shall be an unhesitating and sufficiently well-directed one.”</p>
<p>At these words Yang Hu threw back his cloak to grasp the sword-handle, when the
Mandarin, with his eyes fixed on the naked arm, and evidently inspired by every
manner of conflicting emotions, uttered a cry of unspeakable wonder and
incomparable surprise.</p>
<p>“The Serpent!” he cried, in a voice from which all evenness and
control were absent. “The Sacred Serpent of our Race! O mysterious one,
who and whence are you?”</p>
<p>Engulfed in an all-absorbing doubt at the nature of events, Yang could only
gaze at the form of the serpent which had been clearly impressed upon his arm
from the earliest time of his remembrance, while Ping Siang, tearing the silk
garment from his own arm and displaying thereon a similar form, continued:</p>
<p>“Behold the inevitable and unvarying birthmark of our race! So it was
with this person’s father and the ones before him; so it was with his
treacherously-stolen son; so it will be to the end of all time.”</p>
<p>Trembling beyond all power of restraint, Yang removed the mask which had
hitherto concealed his face.</p>
<p>“Father or race has this person none,” he said, looking into Ping
Siang’s features with an all-engaging hope, tempered in a measure by a
soul-benumbing dread; “nor memory or tradition of an earlier state than
when he herded goats and sought for jade in the southern mountains.”</p>
<p>“Nevertheless,” exclaimed the Mandarin, whose countenance was
lightened with an interest and a benevolent emotion which had never been seen
there before, “beyond all possibility of doubting, you are this
person’s lost and greatly-desired son, stolen away many years ago by the
treacherous conduct of an unworthy woman, yet now happily and miraculously
restored to cherish his declining years and perpetuate an honourable name and
race.”</p>
<p>“Happily!” exclaimed Yang, with fervent indications of
uncontrollable bitterness. “Oh, my illustrious sire, at whose venerated
feet this unworthy person now prostrates himself with well-merited marks of
reverence and self-abasement, has the errand upon which an ignoble son
entered—the every memory of which now causes him the acutest agony of the
lost, but which nevertheless he is pledged to Tung Fel by the Unutterable Oath
to perform—has this unnatural and eternally cursed thing escaped your
versatile mind?”</p>
<p>“Tung Fel!” cried Ping Siang. “Is, then, this blow also by
the hand of that malicious and vindictive person? Oh, what a cycle of events
and interchanging lines of destiny do your words disclose!”</p>
<p>“Who, then, is Tung Fel, my revered Father?” demanded Yang.</p>
<p>“It is a matter which must be made clear from the beginning,”
replied Ping Siang. “At one time this person and Tung Fel were, by nature
and endowments, united in the most amiable bonds of an inseparable friendship.
Presently Tung Fel signed the preliminary contract of a marriage with one who
seemed to be endowed with every variety of enchanting and virtuous grace, but
who was, nevertheless, as the unrolling of future events irresistibly
discovered, a person of irregular character and undignified habits. On the eve
of the marriage ceremony this person was made known to her by the undoubtedly
enraptured Tung Fel, whereupon he too fell into the snare of her engaging
personality, and putting aside all thoughts of prudent restraint, made her more
remunerative offers of marriage than Tung Fel could by any possible chance
overbid. In such a manner—for after the nature of her kind riches were
exceptionally attractive to her degraded imagination—she became this
person’s wife, and the mother of his only son. In spite of these great
honours, however, the undoubted perversity of her nature made her an easy
accomplice to the duplicity of Tung Fel, who, by means of various disguises,
found frequent opportunity of uttering in her presence numerous
well-thought-out suggestions specially designed to lead her imagination towards
an existence in which this person had no adequate representation. Becoming at
length terrified at the possibility of these unworthy emotions, obtruding
themselves upon this person’s notice, the two in question fled together,
taking with them the one who without any doubt is now before me. Despite the
most assiduous search and very tempting and profitable offers of reward, no
information of a reliable nature could be obtained, and at length this
dispirited and completely changed person gave up the pursuit as unavailing.
With his son and heir, upon whose future he had greatly hoped, all emotions of
a generous and high-minded nature left him, and in a very short space of time
he became the avaricious and deservedly unpopular individual against whose
extortions the amiable and long-suffering ones of Ching-fow have for so many
years protested mildly. The sudden and not altogether unexpected fate which is
now on the point of reaching him is altogether too lenient to be entirely
adequate.”</p>
<p>“Oh, my distinguished and really immaculate sire!” cried Yang Hu,
in a voice which expressed the deepest feelings of contrition. “No oaths
or vows, however sacred, can induce this person to stretch forth his hand
against the one who stands before him.”</p>
<p>“Nevertheless,” replied Ping Siang, speaking of the matter as
though it were one which did not closely concern his own existence, “to
neglect the Unutterable Oath would inevitably involve not only the two persons
who are now conversing together, but also those before and those who are to
come after in direct line, in a much worse condition of affairs. That is a fate
which this person would by no means permit to exist, for one of his chief
desires has ever been to establish a strong and vigorous line, to which end,
indeed, he was even now concluding a marriage arrangement with the beautiful
and refined Hiya-ai-Shao, whom he had at length persuaded into accepting his
betrothal tokens without reluctance.”</p>
<p>“Hiya-ai-Shao!” exclaimed Yang; “she has accepted your
silk-bound gifts?”</p>
<p>“The matter need not concern us now,” replied the Mandarin, not
observing in his complicated emotions the manner in which the name of Hiya had
affected Yang, revealing as it undoubtedly did the treachery of his beloved
one. “There only appears to be one honourable way in which the full
circumstances can be arranged, and this person will in no measure endeavour to
avoid it.”</p>
<p>“Such an end is neither ignoble nor painful,” he said, in an
unchanging voice; “nor will this one in any way shrink from so easy and
honourable a solution.”</p>
<p>“The affairs of the future do not exhibit themselves in delicately
coloured hues to this person,” said Yang Hu; “and he would, if the
thing could be so arranged, cheerfully submit to a similar fate in order that a
longer period of existence should be assured to one who has every variety of
claim upon his affection.”</p>
<p>“The proposal is a graceful and conscientious one,” said Ping
Siang, “and is, moreover, a gratifying omen of the future of our race,
which must of necessity be left in your hands. But, for that reason itself,
such a course cannot be pursued. Nevertheless, the events of the past few hours
have been of so exceedingly prosperous and agreeable a nature that this
short-sighted and frequently desponding person can now pass beyond with a
tranquil countenance and every assurance of divine favour.”</p>
<p>With these words Ping Siang indicated that he was desirous of setting forth the
Final Expression, and arranging the necessary matters upon the table beside
him, he stretched forth his hands over Yang Hu, who placed himself in a
suitable attitude of reverence and abasement.</p>
<p>“Yang Hu,” began the Mandarin, “undoubted son, and, after the
accomplishment of the intention which it is our fixed purpose to carry out,
fitting representative of the person who is here before you, engrave well
within your mind the various details upon which he now gives utterance. Regard
the virtues; endeavour to pass an amiable and at the same time not
unremunerative existence; and on all occasions sacrifice freely, to the end
that the torments of those who have gone before may be made lighter, and that
others may be induced in turn to perform a like benevolent charity for
yourself. Having expressed himself upon these general subjects, this person now
makes a last and respectfully-considered desire, which it is his deliberate
wish should be carried to the proper deities as his final expression of
opinion: That Yang Hu may grow as supple as the dried juice of the
bending-palm, and as straight as the most vigorous bamboo from the forests of
the North. That he may increase beyond the prolificness of the white-necked
crow and cover the ground after the fashion of the binding grass. That in
battle his sword may be as a vividly-coloured and many-forked lightning flash,
accompanied by thunderbolts as irresistible as Buddha’s divine wrath; in
peace his voice as resounding as the rolling of many powerful drums among the
Khingan Mountains. That when the kindled fire of his existence returns to the
great Mountain of Pure Flame the earth shall accept again its component parts,
and in no way restrain the divine essence from journeying to its destined
happiness. These words are Ping Siang’s last expression of opinion before
he passes beyond, given in the unvarying assurance that so sacred and important
a petition will in no way be neglected.”</p>
<p>Having in this manner completed all the affairs which seemed to be of a
necessary and urgent nature, and fixing his last glance upon Yang Hu with every
variety of affectionate and estimable emotion, the Mandarin drank a sufficient
quantity of the liquid, and placing himself upon a couch in an attitude of
repose, passed in this dignified and unassuming manner into the Upper Air.</p>
<p>After the space of a few moments spent in arranging certain objects and in
inward contemplation, Yang Hu crossed the chamber, still holding the
half-filled vessel of gold-leaf in his hand, and drawing back the hanging silk,
gazed over the silent streets of Ching-fow and towards the great sky-lantern
above.</p>
<p>“Hiya is faithless,” he said at length in an unspeaking voice;
“this person’s mother a bitter-tasting memory, his father a swiftly
passing shadow that is now for ever lost.” His eyes rested upon the
closed vessel in his hand. “Gladly would—” his thoughts
began, but with this unworthy image a new impression formed itself within his
mind. “A clearly-expressed wish was uttered,” he concluded,
“and Tung Fel still remains.” With this resolution he stepped back
into the chamber and struck the gong loudly.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="link2HCH0007" id="link2HCH0007"></SPAN> VII.<br/> THE CAREER OF THE CHARITABLE QUEN-KI-TONG</h2>
<h3>FIRST PERIOD:<br/> THE PUBLIC OFFICIAL</h3>
<p>“The motives which inspired the actions of the devout Quen-Ki-Tong have
long been ill-reported,” said Kai Lung the story-teller, upon a certain
occasion at Wu-whei, “and, as a consequence, his illustrious memory has
suffered somewhat. Even as the insignificant earth-worm may bring the precious
and many coloured jewel to the surface, so has it been permitted to this
obscure and superficially educated one to discover the truth of the entire
matter among the badly-arranged and frequently really illegible documents
preserved at the Hall of Public Reference at Peking. Without fear of
contradiction, therefore, he now sets forth the credible version.</p>
<p>“Quen-Ki-Tong was one who throughout his life had been compelled by the
opposing force of circumstances to be content with what was offered rather than
attain to that which he desired. Having been allowed to wander over the edge of
an exceedingly steep crag, while still a child, by the aged and untrustworthy
person who had the care of him, and yet suffering little hurt, he was carried
back to the city in triumph, by the one in question, who, to cover her neglect,
declared amid many chants of exultation that as he slept a majestic winged form
had snatched him from her arms and traced magical figures with his body on the
ground in token of the distinguished sacred existence for which he was
undoubtedly set apart. In such a manner he became famed at a very early age for
an unassuming mildness of character and an almost inspired piety of life, so
that on every side frequent opportunity was given him for the display of these
amiable qualities. Should it chance that an insufficient quantity of puppy-pie
had been prepared for the family repast, the undesirable but necessary portion
of cold dried rat would inevitably be allotted to the uncomplaining Quen,
doubtless accompanied by the engaging but unnecessary remark that he alone had
a Heaven-sent intellect which was fixed upon more sublime images than even the
best constructed puppy-pie. Should the number of sedan-chairs not be sufficient
to bear to the Exhibition of Kites all who were desirous of becoming
entertained in such a fashion, inevitably would Quen be the one left behind, in
order that he might have adequate leisure for dignified and pure-minded
internal reflexion.</p>
<p>“In this manner it came about that when a very wealthy but unnaturally
avaricious and evil-tempered person who was connected with Quen’s father
in matters of commerce expressed his fixed determination that the most
deserving and enlightened of his friend’s sons should enter into a
marriage agreement with his daughter, there was no manner of hesitation among
those concerned, who admitted without any questioning between themselves that
Quen was undeniably the one referred to.</p>
<p>“Though naturally not possessing an insignificant intellect, a continuous
habit, together with a most irreproachable sense of filial duty, subdued within
Quen’s internal organs whatever reluctance he might have otherwise
displayed in the matter, so that as courteously as was necessary he presented
to the undoubtedly very ordinary and slow-witted maiden in question the gifts
of irretrievable intention, and honourably carried out his spoken and written
words towards her.</p>
<p>“For a period of years the circumstances of the various persons did not
in any degree change, Quen in the meantime becoming more pure-souled and
inward-seeing with each moon-change, after the manner of the sublime Lien-ti,
who studied to maintain an unmoved endurance in all varieties of events by
placing his body to a greater extent each day in a vessel of boiling liquid.
Nevertheless, the good and charitable deities to whom Quen unceasingly
sacrificed were not altogether unmindful of his virtues; for a son was born,
and an evil disease which arose from a most undignified display of
uncontrollable emotion on her part ended in his wife being deposited with
becoming ceremony in the Family Temple.</p>
<p>“Upon a certain evening, when Quen sat in his inner chamber deliberating
upon the really beneficent yet somewhat inexplicable arrangement of the
all-seeing ones to whom he was very amiably disposed in consequence of the
unwonted tranquillity which he now enjoyed, yet who, it appeared to him, could
have set out the entire matter in a much more satisfactory way from the
beginning, he was made aware by the unexpected beating of many gongs, and by
other signs of refined and deferential welcome, that a person of exalted rank
was approaching his residence. While he was still hesitating in his uncertainty
regarding the most courteous and delicate form of self-abasement with which to
honour so important a visitor—whether to rush forth and allow the
chair-carriers to pass over his prostrate form, to make a pretence of being a
low-caste slave, and in that guise doing menial service, or to conceal himself
beneath a massive and overhanging table until his guest should have availed
himself of the opportunity to examine at his leisure whatever the room
contained—the person in question stood before him. In every detail of
dress and appointment he had the undoubted appearance of being one to whom no
door might be safely closed.</p>
<p>“‘Alas!’ exclaimed Quen, ‘how inferior and
ill-contrived is the mind of a person of my feeble intellectual attainments.
Even at this moment, when the near approach of one who obviously commands every
engaging accomplishment might reasonably be expected to call up within it an
adequate amount of commonplace resource, its ill-destined possessor finds
himself entirely incapable of conducting himself with the fitting outward marks
of his great internal respect. This residence is certainly unprepossessing in
the extreme, yet it contains many objects of some value and of great rarity;
illiterate as this person is, he would not be so presumptuous as to offer any
for your acceptance, but if you will confer upon him the favour of selecting
that which appears to be the most priceless and unreplaceable, he will
immediately, and with every manifestation of extreme delight, break it
irredeemably in your honour, to prove the unaffected depth of his gratified
emotions.’</p>
<p>“‘Quen-Ki-Tong,’ replied the person before him, speaking with
an evident sincerity of purpose, ‘pleasant to this one’s ears are
your words, breathing as they do an obvious hospitality and a due regard for
the forms of etiquette. But if, indeed, you are desirous of gaining this
person’s explicit regard, break no articles of fine porcelain or rare
inlaid wood in proof of it, but immediately dismiss to a very distant spot the
three-score gong-beaters who have enclosed him within two solid rings, and who
are now carrying out their duties in so diligent a manner that he greatly
doubts if the unimpaired faculties of hearing will ever be fully restored.
Furthermore, if your exceedingly amiable intentions desire fuller expression,
cause an unstinted number of vessels of some uninflammable liquid to be
conveyed into your chrysanthemum garden and there poured over the numerous
fireworks and coloured lights which still appear to be in progress. Doubtless
they are well-intentioned marks of respect, but they caused this person
considerable apprehension as he passed among them, and, indeed, give to this
unusually pleasant and unassuming spot the by no means inviting atmosphere of a
low-class tea-house garden during the festivities attending the birthday of the
sacred Emperor.’</p>
<p>“‘This person is overwhelmed with a most unendurable confusion that
the matters referred to should have been regarded in such a light,’
replied Quen humbly. ‘Although he himself had no knowledge of them until
this moment, he is confident that they in no wise differ from the usual
honourable manifestations with which it is customary in this Province to
welcome strangers of exceptional rank and titles.’</p>
<p>“‘The welcome was of a most dignified and impressive nature,’
replied the stranger, with every appearance of not desiring to cause Quen any
uneasy internal doubts; ‘yet the fact is none the less true that at the
moment this person’s head seems to contain an exceedingly powerful and
well-equipped band; and also, that as he passed through the courtyard an
ingeniously constructed but somewhat unmanageable figure of gigantic size,
composed entirely of jets of many-coloured flame, leaped out suddenly from
behind a dark wall and made an almost successful attempt to embrace him in its
ever-revolving arms. Lo Yuen greatly fears that the time when he would have
rejoiced in the necessary display of agility to which the incident gave rise
has for ever passed away.’</p>
<p>“‘Lo Yuen!’ exclaimed Quen, with an unaffected mingling of
the emotions of reverential awe and pleasureable anticipation. ‘Can it
indeed be an uncontroversial fact that so learned and ornamental a person as
the renowned Controller of Unsolicited Degrees stands beneath this inelegant
person’s utterly unpresentable roof! Now, indeed, he plainly understands
why this ill-conditioned chamber has the appearance of being filled with a
Heaven-sent brilliance, and why at the first spoken words of the one before him
a melodious sound, like the rushing waters of the sacred Tien-Kiang, seemed to
fill his ears.’</p>
<p>“‘Undoubtedly the chamber is pervaded by a very exceptional
splendour,’ replied Lo Yuen, who, in spite of his high position, regarded
graceful talk and well-imagined compliments in a spirit of no-satisfaction;
‘yet this commonplace-minded one has a fixed conviction that it is caused
by the crimson-eyed and pink-fire-breathing dragon which, despite your
slave’s most assiduous efforts, is now endeavouring to climb through the
aperture behind you. The noise which still fills his ears, also, resembles
rather the despairing cries of the Ten Thousand Lost Ones at the first sight of
the Pit of Liquid and Red-hot Malachite, yet without question both proceed from
the same cause. Laying aside further ceremony, therefore, permit this greatly
over-estimated person to disclose the object of his inopportune visit. Long
have your amiable virtues been observed and appreciated by the high ones at
Peking, O Quen-Ki-Tong. Too long have they been unrewarded and passed over in
silence. Nevertheless, the moment of acknowledgement and advancement has at
length arrived; for, as the Book of Verses clearly says, “Even the
three-legged mule may contrive to reach the agreed spot in advance of the
others, provided a circular running space has been selected and the number of
rounds be sufficiently ample.” It is this otherwise uninteresting and
obtrusive person’s graceful duty to convey to you the agreeable
intelligence that the honourable and not ill-rewarded office of Guarder of the
Imperial Silkworms has been conferred upon you, and to require you to proceed
without delay to Peking, so that fitting ceremonies of admittance may be
performed before the fifteenth day of the month of Feathered Insects.’</p>
<p>“Alas! how frequently does the purchaser of seemingly vigorous and
exceptionally low-priced flower-seeds discover, when too late, that they are,
in reality, fashioned from the root of the prolific and valueless tzu-ka,
skilfully covered with a disguising varnish! Instead of presenting himself at
the place of commerce frequented by those who entrust money to others on the
promise of an increased repayment when certain very probable events have come
to pass (so that if all else failed he would still possess a serviceable number
of taels), Quen-Ki-Tong entirely neglected the demands of a most ordinary
prudence, nor could he be induced to set out on his journey until he had passed
seven days in public feasting to mark his good fortune, and then devoted
fourteen more days to fasting and various acts of penance, in order to make
known the regret with which he acknowledged his entire unworthiness for the
honour before him. Owing to this very conscientious, but nevertheless somewhat
short-sighted manner of behaving, Quen found himself unable to reach Peking
before the day preceding that to which Lo Yuen had made special reference. From
this cause it came about that only sufficient time remained to perform the
various ceremonies of admission, without in any degree counselling Quen as to
his duties and procedure in the fulfilment of his really important office.</p>
<p>“Among the many necessary and venerable ceremonies observed during the
changing periods of the year, none occupy a more important place than those for
which the fifteenth day of the month of Feathered Insects is reserved,
conveying as they do a respectful and delicately-fashioned petition that the
various affairs upon which persons in every condition of life are engaged may
arrive at a pleasant and remunerative conclusion. At the earliest stroke of the
gong the versatile Emperor, accompanied by many persons of irreproachable
ancestry and certain others, very elaborately attired, proceeds to an open
space set apart for the occasion. With unassuming dexterity the benevolent
Emperor for a brief span of time engages in the menial occupation of a person
of low class, and with his own hands ploughs an assigned portion of land in
order that the enlightened spirits under whose direct guardianship the earth is
placed may not become lax in their disinterested efforts to promote its
fruitfulness. In this charitable exertion he is followed by various other
persons of recognized position, the first being, by custom, the Guarder of the
Imperial Silkworms, while at the same time the amiably-disposed Empress plants
an allotted number of mulberry trees, and deposits upon their leaves the
carefully reared insects which she receives from the hands of their Guarder. In
the case of the accomplished Emperor an ingenious contrivance is resorted to by
which the soil is drawn aside by means of hidden strings as the plough passes
by, the implement in question being itself constructed from paper of the
highest quality, while the oxen which draw it are, in reality, ordinary persons
cunningly concealed within masks of cardboard. In this thoughtful manner the
actual labours of the sublime Emperor are greatly lessened, while no chance is
afforded for an inauspicious omen to be created by the rebellious behaviour of
a maliciously-inclined ox, or by any other event of an unforeseen nature. All
the other persons, however, are required to make themselves proficient in the
art of ploughing, before the ceremony, so that the chances of the attendant
spirits discovering the deception which has been practised upon them in the
case of the Emperor may not be increased by its needless repetition. It was
chiefly for this reason that Lo Yuen had urged Quen to journey to Peking as
speedily as possible, but owing to the very short time which remained between
his arrival and the ceremony of ploughing, not only had the person in question
neglected to profit by instruction, but he was not even aware of the obligation
which awaited him. When, therefore, in spite of every respectful protest on his
part, he was led up to a massively-constructed implement drawn by two powerful
and undeniably evilly-intentioned-looking animals, it was with every sign of
great internal misgivings, and an entire absence of enthusiasm in the
entertainment, that he commenced his not too well understood task. In this
matter he was by no means mistaken, for it soon became plain to all
observers—of whom an immense concourse was assembled—that the
usually self-possessed Guarder of the Imperial Silkworms was conducting himself
in a most undignified manner; for though he still clung to the plough-handles
with an inspired tenacity, his body assumed every variety of base and
uninviting attitude. Encouraged by this inelegant state of affairs, the evil
spirits which are ever on the watch to turn into derision the charitable
intentions of the pure-minded entered into the bodies of the oxen and provoked
within their minds a sudden and malignant confidence that the time had arrived
when they might with safety break into revolt and throw off the outward signs
of their dependent condition. From these various causes it came about that Quen
was, without warning, borne with irresistible certainty against the majestic
person of the sacred Emperor, the inlaid box of Imperial silkworms, which up to
that time had remained safely among the folds of his silk garment, alone
serving to avert an even more violent and ill-destined blow.</p>
<p>“Well said the wise and deep-thinking Ye-te, in his book entitled
<i>Proverbs of Everyday Happenings</i>, ‘Should a person on returning
from the city discover his house to be in flames, let him examine well the
change which he has received from the chair-carrier before it is too late; for
evil never travels alone.’ Scarcely had the unfortunate Quen recovered
his natural attributes from the effect of the disgraceful occurrence which has
been recorded (which, indeed, furnished the matter of a song and many
unpresentable jests among the low-class persons of the city), than the
magnanimous Empress reached that detail of the tree-planting ceremony when it
was requisite that she should deposit the living emblems of the desired
increase and prosperity upon the leaves. Stretching forth her
delicately-proportioned hand to Quen for this purpose, she received from the
still greatly confused person in question the Imperial silkworms in so unseemly
a condition that her eyes had scarcely rested upon them before she was seized
with the rigid sickness, and in that state fell to the ground. At this new and
entirely unforeseen calamity a very disagreeable certainty of approaching evil
began to take possession of all those who stood around, many crying aloud that
every omen of good was wanting, and declaring that unless something of a
markedly propitiatory nature was quickly accomplished, the agriculture of the
entire Empire would cease to flourish, and the various departments of the
commerce in silk would undoubtedly be thrown into a state of most inextricable
confusion. Indeed, in spite of all things designed to have a contrary effect,
the matter came about in the way predicted, for the Hoang-Ho seven times
overcame its restraining barriers, and poured its waters over the surrounding
country, thereby gaining for the first time its well-deserved title of
‘The Sorrow of China,’ by which dishonourable but exceedingly
appropriate designation it is known to this day.</p>
<p>“The manner of greeting which would have been accorded to Quen had he
returned to the official quarter of the city, or the nature of his treatment by
the baser class of the ordinary people if they succeeded in enticing him to
come among them, formed a topic of such uninviting conjecture that the
humane-minded Lo Yuen, who had observed the entire course of events from an
elevated spot, determined to make a well-directed effort towards his safety. To
this end he quickly purchased the esteem of several of those who make a
profession of their strength, holding out the hope of still further reward if
they conducted the venture to a successful termination. Uttering loud cries of
an impending vengeance, as Lo Yuen had instructed them in the matter, and
displaying their exceptional proportions to the astonishment and misgivings of
all beholders, these persons tore open the opium-tent in which Quen had
concealed himself, and, thrusting aside all opposition, quickly dragged him
forth. Holding him high upon their shoulders, in spite of his frequent and
ill-advised endeavours to cast himself to the ground, some surrounded those who
bore him—after the manner of disposing his troops affected by a skilful
leader when the enemy begin to waver—and crying aloud that it was their
unchanging purpose to submit him to the test of burning splinters and
afterwards to torture him, they succeeded by this stratagem in bringing him
through the crowd; and hurling back or outstripping those who endeavoured to
follow, conveyed him secretly and unperceived to a deserted and appointed spot.
Here Quen was obliged to remain until other events caused the recollection of
the many to become clouded and unconcerned towards him, suffering frequent
inconveniences in spite of the powerful protection of Lo Yuen, and not at all
times being able to regard the most necessary repast as an appointment of
undoubted certainty. At length, in the guise of a wandering conjurer who was
unable to display his accomplishments owing to an entire loss of the power of
movement in his arms, Quen passed undetected from the city, and safely reaching
the distant and unimportant town of Lu-Kwo, gave himself up to a protracted
period of lamentation and self-reproach at the unprepossessing manner in which
he had conducted his otherwise very inviting affairs.</p>
<h3>SECOND PERIOD<br/> THE TEMPLE BUILDER</h3>
<p>Two hand-counts of years passed away and Quen still remained at Lu-kwo, all
desire of returning either to Peking or to the place of his birth having by
this time faded into nothingness. Accepting the inevitable fact that he was not
destined ever to become a person with whom taels were plentiful, and yet being
unwilling to forego the charitable manner of life which he had always been
accustomed to observe, it came about that he spent the greater part of his time
in collecting together such sums of money as he could procure from the amiable
and well-disposed, and with them building temples and engaging in other
benevolent works. From this cause it arose the Quen obtained around Lu-kwo a
reputation for high-minded piety, in no degree less than that which had been
conferred upon him in earlier times, so that pilgrims from far distant places
would purposely contrive their journey so as to pass through the town
containing so unassuming and virtuous a person.</p>
<p>“During this entire period Quen had been accompanied by his only son, a
youth of respectful personality, in whose entertaining society he took an
intelligent interest. Even when deeply engaged in what he justly regarded as
the crowning work of his existence—the planning and erecting of an
exceptionally well-endowed marble temple, which was to be entirely covered on
the outside with silver paper, and on the inside with gold-leaf—he did
not fail to observe the various conditions of Liao’s existence, and the
changing emotions which from time to time possessed him. Therefore, when the
person in question, without displaying any signs of internal sickness, and
likewise persistently denying that he had lost any considerable sum of money,
disclosed a continuous habit of turning aside with an unaffected expression of
distaste from all manner of food, and passed the entire night in observing the
course of the great sky-lantern rather than in sleep, the sage and
discriminating Quen took him one day aside, and asked him, as one who might aid
him in the matter, who the maiden was, and what class and position her father
occupied.</p>
<p>“‘Alas!’ exclaimed Liao, with many unfeigned manifestations
of an unbearable fate, ‘to what degree do the class and position of her
entirely unnecessary parents affect the question? or how little hope can this
sacrilegious one reasonably have of ever progressing as far as earthly details
of a pecuniary character in the case of so adorable and far-removed a Being?
The uttermost extent of this wildly-hoping person’s ambition is that when
the incomparably symmetrical Ts’ain learns of the steadfast light of his
devotion, she may be inspired to deposit an emblematic chrysanthemum upon his
tomb in the Family Temple. For such a reward he will cheerfully devote the
unswerving fidelity of a lifetime to her service, not distressing her gentle
and retiring nature by the expression of what must inevitably be a hopeless
passion, but patiently and uncomplainingly guarding her footsteps as from a
distance.’</p>
<p>“Being in this manner made aware of the reason of Liao’s frequent
and unrestrained exclamations of intolerable despair, and of his fixed
determination with regard to the maiden Ts’ain (which seemed, above all
else, to indicate a resolution to shun her presence) Quen could not regard the
immediately-following actions of his son with anything but an emotion of
confusion. For when his eyes next rested upon the exceedingly contradictory
Liao, he was seated in the open space before the house in which Ts’ain
dwelt, playing upon an instrument of stringed woods, and chanting verses into
which the names of the two persons in question had been skilfully introduced
without restraint, his whole manner of behaving being with the evident purpose
of attracting the maiden’s favourable attention. After an absence of many
days, spent in this graceful and complimentary manner, Liao returned suddenly
to the house of his father, and, prostrating his body before him, made a
specific request for his assistance.</p>
<p>“‘As regards Ts’ain and myself,’ he continued,
‘all things are arranged, and but for the unfortunate coincidence of this
person’s poverty and of her father’s cupidity, the details of the
wedding ceremony would undoubtedly now be in a very advanced condition. Upon
these entrancing and well-discussed plans, however, the shadow of the grasping
and commonplace Ah-Ping has fallen like the inopportune opium-pipe from the
mouth of a person examining substances of an explosive nature; for the one
referred to demands a large and utterly unobtainable amount of taels before he
will suffer his greatly-sought-after daughter to accept the gifts of
irretrievable intention.’</p>
<p>“‘Grievous indeed is your plight,’ replied Quen, when he thus
understood the manner of obstacle which impeded his son’s hopes;
‘for in the nature of taels the most diverse men are to be measured
through the same mesh. As the proverb says, “‘All money is
evil,’ exclaimed the philosopher with extreme weariness, as he gathered
up the gold pieces in exchange, but presently discovering that one among them
was such indeed as he had described, he rushed forth without tarrying to take
up a street garment; and with an entire absence of dignity traversed all the
ways of the city in the hope of finding the one who had defrauded him.”
Well does this person know the mercenary Ah-Ping, and the unyielding nature of
his closed hand; for often, but always fruitlessly, he has entered his presence
on affairs connected with the erecting of certain temples. Nevertheless, the
matter is one which does not admit of any incapable faltering, to which end
this one will seek out the obdurate Ah-Ping without delay, and endeavour to
entrap him by some means in the course of argument.’</p>
<p>“From the time of his earliest youth Ah-Ping had unceasingly devoted
himself to the object of getting together an overwhelming number of taels,
using for this purpose various means which, without being really degrading or
contrary to the written law, were not such as might have been cheerfully
engaged in by a person of high-minded honourableness. In consequence of this,
as he grew more feeble in body, and more venerable in appearance, he began to
express frequent and bitter doubts as to whether his manner of life had been
really well arranged; for, in spite of his great wealth, he had grown to adopt
a most inexpensive habit on all occasions, having no desire to spend; and an
ever-increasing apprehension began to possess him that after he had passed
beyond, his sons would be very disinclined to sacrifice and burn money
sufficient to keep him in an affluent condition in the Upper Air. In such a
state of mind was Ah-Ping when Quen-Ki-Tong appeared before him, for it had
just been revealed to him that his eldest and favourite son had, by flattery
and by openly praising the dexterity with which he used his brush and ink,
entrapped him into inscribing his entire name upon certain unwritten sheets of
parchment, which the one in question immediately sold to such as were heavily
indebted to Ah-Ping.</p>
<p>“‘If a person can be guilty of this really unfilial behaviour
during the lifetime of his father,’ exclaimed Ah-Ping, in a tone of
unrestrained vexation, ‘can it be prudently relied upon that he will
carry out his wishes after death, when they involve the remitting to him of
several thousand taels each year? O estimable Quen-Ki-Tong, how immeasurably
superior is the celestial outlook upon which you may safely rely as your
portion! When you are enjoying every variety of sumptuous profusion, as the
reward of your untiring charitable exertions here on earth, the spirit of this
short-sighted person will be engaged in doing menial servitude for the inferior
deities, and perhaps scarcely able, even by those means, to clothe himself
according to the changing nature of the seasons.’</p>
<p>“‘Yet,’ replied Quen, ‘the necessity for so laborious
and unremunerative an existence may even now be averted by taking efficient
precautions before you pass to the Upper Air.’</p>
<p>“‘In what way?’ demanded Ah-Ping, with an awakening hope that
the matter might not be entirely destitute of cheerfulness, yet at the same
time preparing to examine with even unbecoming intrusiveness any expedient
which Quen might lay before him. ‘Is it not explicitly stated that
sacrifices and acts of a like nature, when performed at the end of one’s
existence by a person who to that time has professed no sort of interest in
such matters, shall in no degree be entered as to his good, but rather regarded
as examples of deliberate presumptuousness, and made the excuse for subjecting
him to more severe tortures and acts of penance than would be his portion if he
neglected the custom altogether?’</p>
<p>“‘Undoubtedly such is the case,’ replied Quen; ‘and on
that account it would indicate a most regrettable want of foresight for you to
conduct your affairs in the manner indicated. The only undeniably safe course
is for you to entrust the amount you will require to a person of exceptional
piety, receiving in return his written word to repay the full sum whenever you
shall claim it from him in the Upper Air. By this crafty method the amount will
be placed at the disposal of the person in question as soon as he has passed
beyond, and he will be held by his written word to return it to you whenever
you shall demand it.’</p>
<p>“So amiably impressed with this ingenious scheme was Ah-Ping that he
would at once have entered more fully into the detail had the thought not
arisen in his mind that the person before him was the father of Liao, who
urgently required a certain large sum, and that for this reason he might with
prudence inquire more fully into the matter elsewhere, in case Quen himself
should have been imperceptibly led aside, even though he possessed intentions
of a most unswerving honourableness. To this end, therefore, he desired to
converse again with Quen on the matter, pleading that at that moment a
gathering of those who direct enterprises of a commercial nature required his
presence. Nevertheless, he would not permit the person referred to to depart
until he had complimented him, in both general and specific terms, on the high
character of his life and actions, and the intelligent nature of his
understanding, which had enabled him with so little mental exertion to discover
an efficient plan.</p>
<p>“Without delay Ah-Ping sought out those most skilled in all varieties of
law-forms, in extorting money by devices capable of very different meanings,
and in expedients for evading just debts; but all agreed that such an
arrangement as the one he put before them would be unavoidably binding,
provided the person who received the money alluded to spent it in the exercise
of his charitable desires, and provided also that the written agreement bore
the duty seal of the high ones at Peking, and was deposited in the coffin of
the lender. Fully satisfied, and rejoicing greatly that he could in this way
adequately provide for his future and entrap the avaricious ones of his house,
Ah-Ping collected together the greater part of his possessions, and converting
it into pieces of gold, entrusted them to Quen on the exact understanding that
has already been described, he receiving in turn Quen’s written and
thumb-signed paper of repayment, and his assurance that the whole amount should
be expended upon the silver-paper and gold-leaf Temple with which he was still
engaged.</p>
<p>“It is owing to this circumstance that Quen-Ki-Tong’s
irreproachable name has come to be lightly regarded by many who may be fitly
likened to the latter person in the subtle and experienced proverb, ‘The
wise man’s eyes fell before the gaze of the fool, fearing that if he
looked he must cry aloud, “Thou hopeless one!” “There,”
said the fool to himself, “behold this person’s
power!”’ These badly educated and undiscriminating persons, being
entirely unable to explain the ensuing train of events, unhesitatingly declare
that Quen-Ki-Tong applied a portion of the money which he had received from
Ah-Ping in the manner described to the object of acquiring Ts’ain for his
son Liao. In this feeble and incapable fashion they endeavour to stigmatize the
pure-minded Quen as one who acted directly contrary to his deliberately spoken
word, whereas the desired result was brought about in a much more artful
manner; they describe the commercially successful Ah-Ping as a person of very
inferior prudence, and one easily imposed upon; while they entirely pass over,
as a detail outside the true facts, the written paper preserved among the
sacred relics in the Temple, which announces, among other gifts of a small and
uninviting character, ‘Thirty thousand taels from an elderly ginseng
merchant of Lu-kwo, who desires to remain nameless, through the hand of
Quen-Ki-Tong.’ The full happening in its real and harmless face is now
set forth for the first time.</p>
<p>“Some weeks after the recorded arrangement had been arrived at by Ah-Ping
and Quen, when the taels in question had been expended upon the Temple and
were, therefore, infallibly beyond recall, the former person chanced to be
passing through the public garden in Lu-kwo when he heard a voice lifted up in
the expression of every unendurable feeling of dejection to which one can give
utterance. Stepping aside to learn the cause of so unprepossessing a display of
unrestrained agitation, and in the hope that perhaps he might be able to use
the incident in a remunerative manner, Ah-Ping quickly discovered the unhappy
being who, entirely regardless of the embroidered silk robe which he wore,
reclined upon a raised bank of uninviting earth, and waved his hands from side
to side as his internal emotions urged him.</p>
<p>“‘Quen-Ki-Tong!’ exclaimed Ah-Ping, not fully convinced that
the fact was as he stated it in spite of the image clearly impressed upon his
imagination; ‘to what unpropitious occurrence is so unlooked-for an
exhibition due? Are those who traffic in gold-leaf demanding a high and
prohibitive price for that commodity, or has some evil and vindicative spirit
taken up its abode within the completed portion of the Temple, and by its
offensive but nevertheless diverting remarks and actions removed all semblance
of gravity from the countenances of those who daily come to admire the
construction?’</p>
<p>“‘O thrice unfortunate Ah-Ping,’ replied Quen when he
observed the distinguishing marks of the person before him, ‘scarcely can
this greatly overwhelmed one raise his eyes to your open and intelligent
countenance; for through him you are on the point of experiencing a very severe
financial blow, and it is, indeed, on your account more than on his own that he
is now indulging in these outward signs of a grief too far down to be expressed
in spoken words.’ And at the memory of his former occupation, Quen again
waved his arms from side to side with untiring assiduousness.</p>
<p>“‘Strange indeed to this person’s ears are your words,’
said Ah-Ping, outwardly unmoved, but with an apprehensive internal pain that he
would have regarded Quen’s display of emotion with an easier stomach if
his own taels were safely concealed under the floor of his inner chamber.
‘The sum which this one entrusted to you has, without any pretence been
expended upon the Temple, while the written paper concerning the repayment
bears the duty seal of the high ones at Peking. How, then, can Ah-Ping suffer a
loss at the hands of Quen-Ki-Tong?’</p>
<p>“‘Ah-Ping,’ said Quen, with every appearance of desiring that
both persons should regard the matter in a conciliatory spirit, ‘do not
permit the awaiting demons, which are ever on the alert to enter into a
person’s mind when he becomes distressed out of the common order of
events, to take possession of your usually discriminating faculties until you
have fully understood how this affair has come about. It is no unknown thing
for a person of even exceptional intelligence to reverse his entire manner of
living towards the end of a long and consistent existence; the far-seeing and
not lightly-moved Ah-Ping himself has already done so. In a similar, but
entirely contrary manner, the person who is now before you finds himself
impelled towards that which will certainly bear a very unpresentable face when
the circumstances become known; yet by no other means is he capable of
attaining his greatly-desired object.’</p>
<p>“‘And to what end does that trend?’ demanded Ah-Ping, in no
degree understanding how the matter affected him.</p>
<p>“‘While occupied with enterprises which those of an engaging and
complimentary nature are accustomed to refer to as charitable, this person has
almost entirely neglected a duty of scarcely less importance—that of
establishing an unending line, through which his name and actions shall be kept
alive to all time,’ replied Quen. ‘Having now inquired into the
matter, he finds that his only son, through whom alone the desired result can
be obtained, has become unbearably attached to a maiden for whom a very large
sum is demanded in exchange. The thought of obtaining no advantage from an
entire life of self-denial is certainly unprepossessing in the extreme, but so,
even to a more advanced degree, is the certainty that otherwise the family
monuments will be untended, and the temple of domestic virtues become an early
ruin. This person has submitted the dilemma to the test of omens, and after
considering well the reply, he has decided to obtain the price of the maiden in
a not very honourable manner, which now presents itself, so that Liao may send
out his silk-bound gifts without delay.’</p>
<p>“‘It is an unalluring alternative,’ said Ah-Ping, whose only
inside thought was one of gratification that the exchange money for
Ts’ain would so soon be in his possession, ‘yet this person fails
to perceive how you could act otherwise after the decision of the omens. He now
understands, moreover, that the loss you referred to on his part was in the
nature of a figure of speech, as one makes use of thunderbolts and
delicately-scented flowers to convey ideas of harsh and amiable passions, and
alluded in reality to the forthcoming departure of his daughter, who is, as you
so versatilely suggested, the comfort and riches of his old age.’</p>
<p>“‘O venerable, but at this moment somewhat obtuse, Ah-Ping,’
cried Quen, with a recurrence to his former method of expressing his unfeigned
agitation, ‘is your evenly-balanced mind unable to grasp the essential
fact of how this person’s contemplated action will affect your own
celestial condition? It is a distressing but entirely unavoidable fact, that if
this person acts in the manner which he has determined upon, he will be
condemned to the lowest place of torment reserved for those who fail at the end
of an otherwise pure existence, and in this he will never have an opportunity
of meeting the very much higher placed Ah-Ping, and of restoring to him the
thirty-thousand taels as agreed upon.’</p>
<p>“At these ill-destined words, all power of rigidness departed from
Ah-Ping’s limbs, and he sank down upon the forbidding earth by
Quen’s side.</p>
<p>“‘O most unfortunate one who is now speaking,’ he exclaimed,
when at length his guarding spirit deemed it prudent to restore his power of
expressing himself in words, ‘happy indeed would have been your lot had
you been content to traffic in ginseng and other commodities of which you have
actual knowledge. O amiable Quen, this matter must be in some way arranged
without causing you to deviate from the entrancing paths of your habitual
virtue. Could not the very reasonable Liao be induced to look favourably upon
the attractions of some low-priced maiden, in which case this not really
hard-stomached person would be willing to advance the necessary amount, until
such time as it could be restored, at a very low and unremunerative rate of
interest?’</p>
<p>“‘This person has observed every variety of practical humility in
the course of his life,’ replied Quen with commendable dignity,
‘yet he now finds himself totally unable to overcome an inward repugnance
to the thought of perpetuating his honoured name and race through the medium of
any low-priced maiden. To this end has he decided.’</p>
<p>“Those who were well acquainted with Ah-Ping in matters of commerce did
not hesitate to declare that his great wealth had been acquired by his
consistent habit of forming an opinion quickly while others hesitated. On the
occasion in question he only engaged his mind with the opposing circumstances
for a few moments before he definitely fixed upon the course which he should
pursue.</p>
<p>“‘Quen-Ki-Tong,’ he said, with an evident intermingling of
many very conflicting emotions, ‘retain to the end this well-merited
reputation for unaffected honourableness which you have so fittingly earned.
Few in the entire Empire, with powers so versatilely pointing to an eminent
position in any chosen direction, would have been content to pass their lives
in an unremunerative existence devoted to actions of charity. Had you selected
an entirely different manner of living, this person has every confidence that
he, and many others in Lu-kwo, would by this time be experiencing a very
ignoble poverty. For this reason he will make it his most prominent ambition to
hasten the realization of the amiable hopes expressed both by Liao and by
Ts’ain, concerning their future relationship. In this, indeed, he himself
will be more than exceptionally fortunate should the former one prove to
possess even a portion of the clear-sighted sagaciousness exhibited by his
engaging father.’</p>
<p class="center">
“VERSES COMPOSED BY A MUSICIAN OF LU-KWO, ON THE OCCASION OF THE WEDDING
CEREMONY OF LIAO AND TS’AIN</p>
<p class="poem">
“Bright hued is the morning, the dark clouds have fallen;<br/>
At the mere waving of Quen’s virtuous hands they melted away.<br/>
Happy is Liao in the possession of so accomplished a parent,<br/>
Happy also is Quen to have so discriminating a son.<br/>
<br/>
“The two persons in question sit, side by side, upon an embroidered
couch,<br/>
Listening to the well-expressed compliments of those who pass to and fro.<br/>
From time to time their eyes meet, and glances of a very significant amusement
pass between them;<br/>
Can it be that on so ceremonious an occasion they are recalling events of a
gravity-removing nature?<br/>
<br/>
“The gentle and rainbow-like Ts’ain has already arrived,<br/>
With the graceful motion of a silver carp gliding through a screen of rushes,
she moves among those who are assembled.<br/>
On the brow of her somewhat contentious father there rests the shadow of an
ill-repressed sorrow;<br/>
Doubtless the frequently-misjudged Ah-Ping is thinking of his lonely hearth,
now that he is for ever parted from that which he holds most precious.<br/>
<br/>
“In the most commodious chamber of the house the elegant wedding-gifts
are conspicuously displayed; let us stand beside the one which we have
contributed, and point out its excellence to those who pass by.<br/>
Surely the time cannot be far distant when the sound of many gongs will
announce that the very desirable repast is at length to be partaken
of.”<br/></p>
<h2><SPAN name="link2HCH0008" id="link2HCH0008"></SPAN> VIII.<br/> THE VISION OF YIN, THE SON OF YAT HUANG</h2>
<p>When Yin, the son of Yat Huang, had passed beyond the years assigned to the
pursuit of boyhood, he was placed in the care of the hunchback Quang, so that
he might be fully instructed in the management of the various weapons used in
warfare, and also in the art of stratagem, by which a skilful leader is often
enabled to conquer when opposed to an otherwise overwhelming multitude. In all
these accomplishments Quang excelled to an exceptional degree; for although
unprepossessing in appearance he united matchless strength to an untiring
subtlety. No other person in the entire Province of Kiang-si could hurl a
javelin so unerringly while uttering sounds of terrifying menace, or could
cause his sword to revolve around him so rapidly, while his face looked out
from the glittering circles with an expression of ill-intentioned malignity
that never failed to inspire his adversary with irrepressible emotions of
alarm. No other person could so successfully feign to be devoid of life for
almost any length of time, or by his manner of behaving create the fixed
impression that he was one of insufficient understanding, and therefore
harmless. It was for these reasons that Quang was chosen as the instructor of
Yin by Yat Huang, who, without possessing any official degree, was a person to
whom marks of obeisance were paid not only within his own town, but for a
distance of many li around it.</p>
<p>At length the time arrived when Yin would in the ordinary course of events pass
from the instructorship of Quang in order to devote himself to the commerce in
which his father was engaged, and from time to time the unavoidable thought
arose persistently within his mind that although Yat Huang doubtless knew
better than he did what the circumstances of the future required, yet his
manner of life for the past years was not such that he could contemplate
engaging in the occupation of buying and selling porcelain clay with feelings
of an overwhelming interest. Quang, however, maintained with every
manifestation of inspired assurance that Yat Huang was to be commended down to
the smallest detail, inasmuch as proficiency in the use of both blunt and
sharp-edged weapons, and a faculty for passing undetected through the midst of
an encamped body of foemen, fitted a person for the every-day affairs of life
above all other accomplishments.</p>
<p>“Without doubt the very accomplished Yat Huan is well advised on this
point,” continued Quang, “for even this mentally short-sighted
person can call up within his understanding numerous specific incidents in the
ordinary career of one engaged in the commerce of porcelain clay when such
attainments would be of great remunerative benefit. Does the well-endowed Yin
think, for example, that even the most depraved person would endeavour to gain
an advantage over him in the matter of buying or selling porcelain clay if he
fully understood the fact that the one with whom he was trafficking could
unhesitatingly transfix four persons with one arrow at the distance of a
hundred paces? Or to what advantage would it be that a body of unscrupulous
outcasts who owned a field of inferior clay should surround it with drawn
swords by day and night, endeavouring meanwhile to dispose of it as material of
the finest quality, if the one whom they endeavoured to ensnare in this manner
possessed the power of being able to pass through their ranks unseen and
examine the clay at his leisure?”</p>
<p>“In the cases to which reference has been made, the possession of those
qualities would undoubtedly be of considerable use,” admitted Yin;
“yet, in spite of his entire ignorance of commercial matters, this one
has a confident feeling that it would be more profitable to avoid such very
doubtful forms of barter altogether rather than spend eight years in acquiring
the arts by which to defeat them. That, however, is a question which concerns
this person’s virtuous and engaging father more than his unworthy self,
and his only regret is that no opportunity has offered by which he might prove
that he has applied himself diligently to your instruction and example, O
amiable Quang.”</p>
<p>It had long been a regret to Quang also that no incident of a disturbing nature
had arisen whereby Yin could have shown himself proficient in the methods of
defence and attack which he had taught him. This deficiency he had endeavoured
to overcome, as far as possible, by constructing life-like models of all the
most powerful and ferocious types of warriors and the fiercest and most
relentless animals of the forest, so that Yin might become familiar with their
appearance and discover in what manner each could be the most expeditiously
engaged.</p>
<p>“Nevertheless,” remarked Quang, on an occasion when Yin appeared to
be covered with honourable pride at having approached an unusually large and
repulsive-looking tiger so stealthily that had the animal been really alive it
would certainly have failed to perceive him, “such accomplishments are by
no means to be regarded as conclusive in themselves. To steal insidiously upon
a destructively-included wild beast and transfix it with one well-directed blow
of a spear is attended by difficulties and emotions which are entirely absent
in the case of a wickerwork animal covered with canvas-cloth, no matter how
deceptive in appearance the latter may be.”</p>
<p>To afford Yin a more trustworthy example of how he should engage with an
adversary of formidable proportions, Quang resolved upon an ingenious plan.
Procuring the skin of a grey wolf, he concealed himself within it, and in the
early morning, while the mist-damp was still upon the ground, he set forth to
meet Yin, who had on a previous occasion spoken to him of his intention to be
at a certain spot at such an hour. In this conscientious enterprise, the
painstaking Quang would doubtless have been successful, and Yin gained an
assured proficiency and experience, had it not chanced that on the journey
Quang encountered a labourer of low caste who was crossing the enclosed ground
on his way to the rice field in which he worked. This contemptible and
inopportune person, not having at any period of his existence perfected himself
in the recognized and elegant methods of attack and defence, did not act in the
manner which would assuredly have been adopted by Yin in similar circumstances,
and for which Quang would have been fully prepared. On the contrary, without
the least indication of what his intention was, he suddenly struck Quang, who
was hesitating for a moment what action to take, a most intolerable blow with a
formidable staff which he carried. The stroke in question inflicted itself upon
Quang upon that part of the body where the head becomes connected with the
neck, and would certainly have been followed by others of equal force and
precision had not Quang in the meantime decided that the most dignified course
for him to adopt would be to disclose his name and titles without delay. Upon
learning these facts, the one who stood before him became very grossly and
offensively amused, and having taken from Quang everything of value which he
carried among his garments, went on his way, leaving Yin’s instructor to
retrace his steps in unendurable dejection, as he then found that he possessed
no further interest whatever in the undertaking.</p>
<p>When Yat Huang was satisfied that his son was sufficiently skilled in the
various arts of warfare, he called him to his inner chamber, and having barred
the door securely, he placed Yin under a very binding oath not to reveal, until
an appointed period, the matter which he was going to put before him.</p>
<p>“From father to son, in unbroken line for ten generations, has such a
custom been observed,” he said, “for the course of events is not to
be lightly entered upon. At the commencement of that cycle, which period is now
fully fifteen score years ago, a very wise person chanced to incur the
displeasure of the Emperor of that time, and being in consequence driven out of
the capital, he fled to the mountains. There his subtle discernment and the
pure and solitary existence which he led resulted in his becoming endowed with
faculties beyond those possessed by ordinary beings. When he felt the end of
his earthly career to be at hand he descended into the plain, where, in a state
of great destitution and bodily anguish, he was discovered by the one whom this
person has referred to as the first of the line of ancestors. In return for the
care and hospitality with which he was unhesitatingly received, the admittedly
inspired hermit spent the remainder of his days in determining the destinies of
his rescuer’s family and posterity. It is an undoubted fact that he
predicted how one would, by well-directed enterprise and adventure, rise to a
position of such eminence in the land that he counselled the details to be kept
secret, lest the envy and hostility of the ambitious and unworthy should be
raised. From this cause it has been customary to reveal the matter fully from
father to son, at stated periods, and the setting out of the particulars in
written words has been severely discouraged. Wise as this precaution certainly
was, it has resulted in a very inconvenient state of things; for a remote
ancestor—the fifth in line from the beginning—experienced such
vicissitudes that he returned from his travels in a state of most abandoned
idiocy, and when the time arrived that he should, in turn, communicate to his
son, he was only able to repeat over and over again the name of the pious
hermit to whom the family was so greatly indebted, coupling it each time with a
new and markedly offensive epithet. The essential details of the undertaking
having in this manner passed beyond recall, succeeding generations, which were
merely acquainted with the fact that a very prosperous future awaited the one
who fulfilled the conditions, have in vain attempted to conform to them. It is
not an alluring undertaking, inasmuch as nothing of the method to be pursued
can be learned, except that it was the custom of the early ones, who held the
full knowledge, to set out from home and return after a period of years. Yet so
clearly expressed was the prophecy, and so great the reward of the successful,
that all have eagerly journeyed forth when the time came, knowing nothing
beyond that which this person has now unfolded to you.”</p>
<p>When Yat Huang reached the end of the matter which it was his duty to disclose,
Yin for some time pondered the circumstances before replying. In spite of a
most engaging reverence for everything of a sacred nature, he could not
consider the inspired remark of the well-intentioned hermit without feelings of
a most persistent doubt, for it occurred to him that if the person in question
had really been as wise as he was represented to be, he might reasonably have
been expected to avoid the unaccountable error of offending the enlightened and
powerful Emperor under whom he lived. Nevertheless, the prospect of engaging in
the trade of porcelain clay was less attractive in his eyes than that of
setting forth upon a journey of adventure, so that at length he expressed his
willingness to act after the manner of those who had gone before him.</p>
<p>This decision was received by Yat Huang with an equal intermingling of the
feelings of delight and concern, for although he would have by no means
pleasurably contemplated Yin breaking through a venerable and esteemed custom,
he was unable to put entirely from him the thought of the degrading fate which
had overtaken the fifth in line who made the venture. It was, indeed, to guard
Yin as much as possible against the dangers to which he would become exposed,
if he determined on the expedition, that the entire course of his training had
been selected. In order that no precaution of a propitious nature should be
neglected, Yat Huang at once despatched written words of welcome to all with
whom he was acquainted, bidding them partake of a great banquet which he was
preparing to mark the occasion of his son’s leave-taking. Every variety
of sacrifice was offered up to the controlling deities, both good and bad; the
ten ancestors were continuously exhorted to take Yin under their special
protection, and sets of verses recording his virtues and ambitions were freely
distributed among the necessitous and low-caste who could not be received at
the feast.</p>
<p>The dinner itself exceeded in magnificence any similar event that had ever
taken place in Ching-toi. So great was the polished ceremony observed on the
occasion, that each guest had half a score of cups of the finest apricot-tea
successively placed before him and taken away untasted, while Yat Huang went to
each in turn protesting vehemently that the honour of covering such pure-minded
and distinguished persons was more than his badly designed roof could
reasonably bear, and wittingly giving an entrancing air of reality to the
spoken compliment by begging them to move somewhat to one side so that they
might escape the heavy central beam if the event which he alluded to chanced to
take place. After several hours had been spent in this congenial occupation,
Yat Huang proceeded to read aloud several of the sixteen discourses on
education which, taken together, form the discriminating and infallible example
of conduct known as the Holy Edict. As each detail was dwelt upon Yin arose
from his couch and gave his deliberate testimony that all the required tests
and rites had been observed in his own case. The first part of the repast was
then partaken of, the nature of the ingredients and the manner of preparing
them being fully explained, and in a like manner through each succeeding one of
the four-and-forty courses. At the conclusion Yin again arose, being encouraged
by the repeated uttering of his name by those present, and with extreme modesty
and brilliance set forth his manner of thinking concerning all subjects with
which he was acquainted.</p>
<p>Early on the morning of the following day Yin set out on his travels, entirely
unaccompanied, and carrying with him nothing beyond a sum of money, a silk
robe, and a well-tried and reliable spear. For many days he journeyed in a
northerly direction, without encountering anything sufficiently unusual to
engage his attention. This, however, was doubtless part of a pre-arranged
scheme so that he should not be drawn from a destined path, for at a small
village lying on the southern shore of a large lake, called by those around
Silent Water, he heard of the existence of a certain sacred island, distant a
full day’s sailing, which was barren of all forms of living things, and
contained only a single gigantic rock of divine origin and majestic appearance.
Many persons, the villagers asserted, had sailed to the island in the hope of
learning the portent of the rock, but none ever returned, and they themselves
avoided coming even within sight of it; for the sacred stone, they declared,
exercised an evil influence over their ships, and would, if permitted, draw
them out of their course and towards itself. For this reason Yin could find no
guide, whatever reward he offered, who would accompany him; but having with
difficulty succeeded in hiring a small boat of inconsiderable value, he
embarked with food, incense, and materials for building fires, and after rowing
consistently for nearly the whole of the day, came within sight of the island
at evening. Thereafter the necessity of further exertion ceased, for, as they
of the village had declared would be the case, the vessel moved gently forward,
in an unswerving line, without being in any way propelled, and reaching its
destination in a marvellously short space of time, passed behind a protecting
spur of land and came to rest. It then being night, Yin did no more than carry
his stores to a place of safety, and after lighting a sacrificial fire and
prostrating himself before the rock, passed into the Middle Air.</p>
<p>In the morning Yin’s spirit came back to the earth amid the sound of
music of a celestial origin, which ceased immediately he recovered full
consciousness. Accepting this manifestation as an omen of Divine favour, Yin
journeyed towards the centre of the island where the rock stood, at every step
passing the bones of innumerable ones who had come on a similar quest to his,
and perished. Many of these had left behind them inscriptions on wood or bone
testifying their deliberate opinion of the sacred rock, the island, their
protecting deities, and the entire train of circumstances, which had resulted
in their being in such a condition. These were for the most part of a
maledictory and unencouraging nature, so that after reading a few, Yin
endeavoured to pass without being in any degree influenced by such ill-judged
outbursts.</p>
<p>“Accursed be the ancestors of this tormented one to four generations
back!” was prominently traced upon an unusually large shoulder-blade.
“May they at this moment be simmering in a vat of unrefined
dragon’s blood, as a reward for having so undiscriminatingly reared the
person who inscribes these words only to attain this end!” “Be
warned, O later one, by the signs around!” Another and more
practical-minded person had written: “Retreat with all haste to your
vessel, and escape while there is yet time. Should you, by chance, again reach
land through this warning, do not neglect, out of an emotion of gratitude, to
burn an appropriate amount of sacrifice paper for the lessening of the torments
of the spirit of Li-Kao,” to which an unscrupulous one, who was plainly
desirous of sharing in the benefit of the requested sacrifice, without
suffering the exertion of inscribing a warning after the amiable manner of
Li-Kao, had added the words, “and that of Huan Sin.”</p>
<p>Halting at a convenient distance from one side of the rock which, without being
carved by any person’s hand, naturally resembled the symmetrical
countenance of a recumbent dragon (which he therefore conjectured to be the
chief point of the entire mass), Yin built his fire and began an unremitting
course of sacrifice and respectful ceremony. This manner of conduct he observed
conscientiously for the space of seven days. Towards the end of that period a
feeling of unendurable dejection began to possess him, for his stores of all
kinds were beginning to fail, and he could not entirely put behind him the
memory of the various well-intentioned warnings which he had received, or the
sight of the fleshless ones who had lined his path. On the eighth day, being
weak with hunger and, by reason of an intolerable thirst, unable to restrain
his body any longer in the spot where he had hitherto continuously prostrated
himself nine-and-ninety times each hour without ceasing, he rose to his feet
and retraced his steps to the boat in order that he might fill his water-skins
and procure a further supply of food.</p>
<p>With a complicated emotion, in which was present every abandoned and
disagreeable thought to which a person becomes a prey in moments of exceptional
mental and bodily anguish, he perceived as soon as he reached the edge of the
water that the boat, upon which he was confidently relying to carry him back
when all else failed, had disappeared as entirely as the smoke from an
extinguished opium pipe. At this sight Yin clearly understood the meaning of
Li-Kao’s unregarded warning, and recognized that nothing could now save
him from adding his incorruptible parts to those of the unfortunate ones whose
unhappy fate had, seven days ago, engaged his refined pity. Unaccountably
strengthened in body by the indignation which possessed him, and inspired with
a virtuous repulsion at the treacherous manner of behaving on the part of those
who guided his destinies, he hastened back to his place of obeisance, and
perceiving that the habitually placid and introspective expression on the
dragon face had imperceptibly changed into one of offensive cunning and
unconcealed contempt, he snatched up his spear and, without the consideration
of a moment, hurled it at a score of paces distance full into the sacred but
nevertheless very unprepossessing face before him.</p>
<p>At the instant when the presumptuous weapon touched the holy stone the entire
intervening space between the earth and the sky was filled with innumerable
flashes of forked and many-tongued lightning, so that the island had the
appearance of being the scene of a very extensive but somewhat badly-arranged
display of costly fireworks. At the same time the thunder rolled among the
clouds and beneath the sea in an exceedingly disconcerting manner. At the first
indication of these celestial movements a sudden blindness came upon Yin, and
all power of thought or movement forsook him; nevertheless, he experienced an
emotion of flight through the air, as though borne upwards upon the back of a
winged creature. When this emotion ceased, the blindness went from him as
suddenly and entirely as if a cloth had been pulled away from his eyes, and he
perceived that he was held in the midst of a boundless space, with no other
object in view than the sacred rock, which had opened, as it were, revealing a
mighty throng within, at the sight of whom Yin’s internal organs trembled
as they would never have moved at ordinary danger, for it was put into his
spirit that these in whose presence he stood were the sacred Emperors of his
country from the earliest time until the usurpation of the Chinese throne by
the devouring Tartar hordes from the North.</p>
<p>As Yin gazed in fear-stricken amazement, a knowledge of the various Pure Ones
who composed the assembly came upon him. He understood that the three unclad
and commanding figures which stood together were the Emperors of the Heaven,
Earth, and Man, whose reigns covered a space of more than eighty thousand
years, commencing from the time when the world began its span of existence.
Next to them stood one wearing a robe of leopard-skin, his hand resting upon a
staff of a massive club, while on his face the expression of tranquillity which
marked his predecessors had changed into one of alert wakefulness; it was the
Emperor of Houses, whose reign marked the opening of the never-ending strife
between man and all other creatures. By his side stood his successor, the
Emperor of Fire, holding in his right hand the emblem of the knotted cord, by
which he taught man to cultivate his mental faculties, while from his mouth
issued smoke and flame, signifying that by the introduction of fire he had
raised his subjects to a state of civilized life.</p>
<p>On the other side of the boundless chamber which seemed to be contained within
the rocks were Fou-Hy, Tchang-Ki, Tcheng-Nung, and Huang, standing or reclining
together. The first of these framed the calendar, organized property, thought
out the eight Essential Diagrams, encouraged the various branches of hunting,
and the rearing of domestic animals, and instituted marriage. From his couch
floated melodious sounds in remembrance of his discovery of the property of
stringed woods. Tchang-Ki, who manifested the property of herbs and growing
plants, wore a robe signifying his attainments by means of embroidered symbols.
His hand rested on the head of the dragon, while at his feet flowed a
bottomless canal of the purest water. The discovery of written letters by
Tcheng-Nung, and his ingenious plan of grouping them after the manner of the
constellations of stars, was emblemized in a similar manner, while Huang, or
the Yellow Emperor, was surrounded by ores of the useful and precious metals,
weapons of warfare, written books, silks and articles of attire, coined money,
and a variety of objects, all testifying to his ingenuity and inspired energy.</p>
<p>These illustrious ones, being the greatest, were the first to take Yin’s
attention, but beyond them he beheld an innumerable concourse of Emperors who
not infrequently outshone their majestic predecessors in the richness of their
apparel and the magnificence of the jewels which they wore. There Yin perceived
Hung-Hoang, who first caused the chants to be collected, and other rulers of
the Tcheon dynasty; Yong-Tching, who compiled the Holy Edict; Thang rulers
whose line is rightly called “the golden,” from the unsurpassed
excellence of the composed verses which it produced; renowned Emperors of the
versatile Han dynasty; and, standing apart, and shunned by all, the malignant
and narrow-minded Tsing-Su-Hoang, who caused the Sacred Books to be burned.</p>
<p>Even while Yin looked and wondered, in great fear, a rolling voice, coming from
one who sat in the midst of all, holding in his right hand the sun, and in his
left the moon, sounded forth, like the music of many brass instruments playing
in unison. It was the First Man who spoke.</p>
<p>“Yin, son of Yat Huang, and creature of the Lower Part,” he said,
“listen well to the words I speak, for brief is the span of your tarrying
in the Upper Air, nor will the utterance I now give forth ever come unto your
ears again, either on the earth, or when, blindly groping in the Middle
Distance, your spirit takes its nightly flight. They who are gathered around,
and whose voices I speak, bid me say this: Although immeasurably above you in
all matters, both of knowledge and of power, yet we greet you as one who is
well-intentioned, and inspired with honourable ambition. Had you been content
to entreat and despair, as did all the feeble and incapable ones whose white
bones formed your pathway, your ultimate fate would have in no wise differed
from theirs. But inasmuch as you held yourself valiantly, and, being taken,
raised an instinctive hand in return, you have been chosen; for the day to mute
submission has, for the time or for ever, passed away, and the hour is when
China shall be saved, not by supplication, but by the spear.”</p>
<p>“A state of things which would have been highly unnecessary if I had been
permitted to carry out my intention fully, and restore man to his prehistoric
simplicity,” interrupted Tsin-Su-Hoang. “For that reason, when the
voice of the assemblage expresses itself, it must be understood that it
represents in no measure the views of Tsin-Su-Hoang.”</p>
<p>“In the matter of what has gone before, and that which will follow
hereafter,” continued the Voice dispassionately, “Yin, the son of
Yat-Huang, must concede that it is in no part the utterance of
Tsin-Su-Hoang—Tsin-Su-Hoang who burned the Sacred Books.”</p>
<p>At the mention of the name and offence of this degraded being a great sound
went up from the entire multitude—a universal cry of execration, not
greatly dissimilar from that which may be frequently heard in the crowded
Temple of Impartiality when the one whose duty it is to take up, at a venture,
the folded papers, announces that the sublime Emperor, or some mandarin of
exalted rank, has been so fortunate as to hold the winning number in the Annual
State Lottery. So vengeance-laden and mournful was the combined and evidently
preconcerted wail, that Yin was compelled to shield his ears against it; yet
the inconsiderable Tsin-Su-Hoang, on whose account it was raised, seemed in no
degree to be affected by it, he, doubtless, having become hardened by hearing a
similar outburst, at fixed hours, throughout interminable cycles of time.</p>
<p>When the last echo of the cry had passed away the Voice continued to speak.</p>
<p>“Soon the earth will again receive you, Yin,” it said, “for
it is not respectful that a lower one should be long permitted to gaze upon our
exalted faces. Yet when you go forth and stand once more among men this is laid
on you: that henceforth you are as a being devoted to a fixed and unchanging
end, and whatever moves towards the restoring of the throne of the Central
Empire the outcast but unalterably sacred line of its true sovereigns shall
have your arm and mind. By what combination of force and stratagem this can be
accomplished may not be honourably revealed by us, the all-knowing.
Nevertheless, omens and guidance shall not be lacking from time to time, and
from the beginning the weapon by which you have attained to this distinction
shall be as a sign of our favour and protection over you.”</p>
<p>When the Voice made an end of speaking the sudden blindness came upon Yin, as
it had done before, and from the sense of motion which he experienced, he
conjectured that he was being conveyed back to the island. Undoubtedly this was
the case, for presently there came upon him the feeling that he was awakening
from a deep and refreshing sleep, and opening his eyes, which he now found
himself able to do without any difficulty, he immediately discovered that he
was reclining at full length on the ground, and at a distance of about a score
of paces from the dragon head. His first thought was to engage in a lengthy
course of self-abasement before it, but remembering the words which had been
spoken to him while in the Upper Air, he refrained, and even ventured to go
forward with a confident but somewhat self-deprecatory air, to regain the
spear, which he perceived lying at the foot of the rock. With feelings of a
reassuring nature he then saw that the very undesirable expression which he had
last beheld upon the dragon face had melted into one of encouraging urbanity
and benignant esteem.</p>
<p>Close by the place where he had landed he discovered his boat, newly furnished
with wine and food of a much more attractive profusion than that which he had
purchased in the village. Embarking in it, he made as though he would have
returned to the south, but the spear which he held turned within his grasp, and
pointed in an exactly opposite direction. Regarding this fact as an express
command on the part of the Deities, Yin turned his boat to the north, and in
the space of two days’ time—being continually guided by the fixed
indication of the spear—he reached the shore and prepared to continue his
travels in the same direction, upheld and inspired by the knowledge that
henceforth he moved under the direct influence of very powerful spirits.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="link2HCH0009" id="link2HCH0009"></SPAN> IX.<br/> THE ILL-REGULATED DESTINY OF KIN YEN, THE PICTURE-MAKER</h2>
<p class="center">
As recorded by himself before his sudden departure from Peking, owing to
circumstances which are made plain in the following narrative.</p>
<p>There are moments in the life of a person when the saying of the wise Ni-Hyu
that “Misfortune comes to all men and to most women” is endowed
with double force. At such times the faithful child of the Sun is a prey to the
whitest and most funereal thoughts, and even the inspired wisdom of his
illustrious ancestors seems more than doubtful, while the continued inactivity
of the Sacred Dragon appears for the time to give colour to the scoffs of the
Western barbarian. A little while ago these misgivings would have found no
resting-place in the bosom of the writer. Now, however—but the matter
must be made clear from the beginning.</p>
<p>The name of the despicable person who here sets forth his immature story is Kin
Yen, and he is a native of Kia-Lu in the Province of Che-Kiang. Having
purchased from a very aged man the position of Hereditary Instructor in the Art
of Drawing Birds and Flowers, he gave lessons in these accomplishments until he
had saved sufficient money to journey to Peking. Here it was his presumptuous
intention to learn the art of drawing figures in order that he might illustrate
printed leaves of a more distinguished class than those which would accept what
true politeness compels him to call his exceedingly unsymmetrical pictures of
birds and flowers. Accordingly, when the time arrived, he disposed of his
Hereditary Instructorship, having first ascertained in the interests of his
pupils that his successor was a person of refined morals and great filial
piety.</p>
<p>Alas! it is well written, “The road to eminence lies through the cheap
and exceedingly uninviting eating-houses.” In spite of this
person’s great economy, and of his having begged his way from Kia-Lu to
Peking in the guise of a pilgrim, journeying to burn incense in the sacred
Temple of Truth near that city, when once within the latter place his taels
melted away like the smile of a person of low class when he discovers that the
mandarin’s stern words were not intended as a jest. Moreover, he found
that the story-makers of Peking, receiving higher rewards than those at Kia-Lu,
considered themselves bound to introduce living characters into all their
tales, and in consequence the very ornamental drawings of birds and flowers
which he had entwined into a legend entitled “The Last Fight of the
Heaven-sent Tcheng”—a story which had been entrusted to him for
illustration as a test of his skill—was returned to him with a
communication in which the writer revealed his real meaning by stating contrary
facts. It therefore became necessary that he should become competent in the art
of drawing figures without delay, and with this object he called at the
picture-room of Tieng Lin, a person whose experience was so great that he
could, without discomfort to himself, draw men and women of all classes, both
good and bad. When the person who is setting forth this narrative revealed to
Tieng Lin the utmost amount of money he could afford to give for instruction in
the art of drawing living figures, Tieng Lin’s face became as overcast as
the sky immediately before the Great Rains, for in his ignorance of this
incapable person’s poverty he had treated him with equality and courtesy,
nor had he kept him waiting in the mean room on the plea that he was at that
moment closeted with the Sacred Emperor. However, upon receiving an assurance
that a rumour would be spread in which the number of taels should be multiplied
by ten, and that the sum itself should be brought in advance, Tieng Lin
promised to instruct this person in the art of drawing five characters, which,
he said, would be sufficient to illustrate all stories except those by the most
expensive and highly-rewarded story-tellers—men who have become so
proficient that they not infrequently introduce a score or more of living
persons into their tales without confusion.</p>
<p>After considerable deliberation, this unassuming person selected the following
characters, judging them to be the most useful, and the most readily applicable
to all phases and situations of life:</p>
<p>1. A bad person, wearing a long dark pigtail and smoking an opium pipe. His
arms to be folded, and his clothes new and very expensive.</p>
<p>2. A woman of low class. One who removes dust and useless things from the rooms
of the over-fastidious and of those who have long nails; she to be carrying her
trade-signs.</p>
<p>3. A person from Pe-ling, endowed with qualities which cause the beholder to be
amused. This character to be especially designed to go with the short sayings
which remove gravity.</p>
<p>4. One who, having incurred the displeasure of the sublime Emperor, has been
decapitated in consequence.</p>
<p>5. An ordinary person of no striking or distinguished appearance. One who can
be safely introduced in all places and circumstances without great fear of
detection.</p>
<p>After many months spent in constant practice and in taking measurements, this
unenviable person attained a very high degree of proficiency, and could draw
any of the five characters without hesitation. With renewed hope, therefore, he
again approached those who sit in easy-chairs, and concealing his identity (for
they are stiff at bending, and when once a picture-maker is classed as
“of no good” he remains so to the end, in spite of change), he
succeeded in getting entrusted with a story by the elegant and refined Kyen
Tal. This writer, as he remembered with distrust, confines his distinguished
efforts entirely to the doings of sailors and of those connected with the sea,
and this tale, indeed, he found upon reading to be the narrative of how a
Hang-Chow junk and its crew, consisting mostly of aged persons, were beguiled
out of their course by an exceedingly ill-disposed dragon, and wrecked upon an
island of naked barbarians. It was, therefore, with a somewhat heavy stomach
that this person set himself the task of arranging his five characters as so to
illustrate the words of the story.</p>
<p>The sayings of the ancient philosopher Tai Loo are indeed very subtle, and the
truth of his remark, “After being disturbed in one’s dignity by a
mandarin’s foot it is no unusual occurrence to fall flat on the face in
crossing a muddy street,” was now apparent. Great as was the disadvantage
owing to the nature of the five characters, this became as nothing when it
presently appeared that the avaricious and clay-souled Tieng Lin, taking
advantage of the blindness of this person’s enthusiasm, had taught him
the figures so that they all gazed in the same direction. In consequence of
this it would have been impossible that two should be placed as in the act of
conversing together had not the noble Kyen Tal been inspired to write that
“his companions turned from him in horror.” This incident the
ingenious person who is recording these facts made the subject of three
separate drawings, and having in one or two other places effected skilful
changes in the writing, so similar in style to the strokes of the illustrious
Kyen Tal as to be undetectable, he found little difficulty in making use of all
his characters. The risks of the future, however, were too great to be run with
impunity; therefore it was arranged, by means of money—for this person
was fast becoming acquainted with the ways of Peking—that an emissary
from one who sat in an easy-chair should call upon him for a conference, the
narrative of which appeared in this form in the <i>Peking Printed Leaves of
Thrice-distilled Truth:</i></p>
<p class="letter">
The brilliant and amiable young picture-maker Kin Yen, in spite of the
immediate and universal success of his accomplished efforts, is still quite
rotund in intellect, nor is he, if we may use a form of speaking affected by
our friends across the Hoang Hai, “suffering from swollen feet.” A
person with no recognized position, but one who occasionally does inferior work
of this nature for us, recently surprised Kin Yen without warning, and found
him in his sumptuously appointed picture-room, busy with compasses and
tracing-paper. About the place were scattered in elegant confusion several of
his recent masterpieces. From the subsequent conversation we are in a position
to make it known that in future this refined and versatile person will confine
himself entirely to illustrations of processions, funerals, armies on the
march, persons pursued by others, and kindred subjects which appeal strongly to
his imagination. Kin Yen has severe emotions on the subject of individuality in
art, and does not hesitate to express himself forcibly with reference to those
who are content to degrade the names of their ancestors by turning out what he
wittily describes as “so much of varied mediocrity.”</p>
<p>The prominence obtained by this pleasantly-composed notice—for it was
copied by others who were unaware of the circumstance of its origin—had
the desired effect. In future, when one of those who sit in easy-chairs wished
for a picture after the kind mentioned, he would say to his lesser one:
“Oh, send to the graceful and versatile Kin Yen; he becomes inspired on
the subject of funerals,” or persons escaping from prison, or families
walking to the temple, or whatever it might be. In that way this narrow-minded
and illiterate person was soon both looked at and rich, so that it was his
daily practice to be carried, in silk garments, past the houses of those who
had known him in poverty, and on these occasions he would puff out his cheeks
and pull his moustaches, looking fiercely from side to side.</p>
<p>True are the words written in the elegant and distinguished Book of Verses:
“Beware lest when being kissed by the all-seeing Emperor, you step upon
the elusive banana-peel.” It was at the height of eminence in this
altogether degraded person’s career that he encountered the being who led
him on to his present altogether too lamentable condition.</p>
<p>Tien Nung is the earthly name by which is known she who combines all the most
illustrious attributes which have been possessed of women since the days of the
divine Fou-Hy. Her father is a person of very gross habits, and lives by
selling inferior merchandise covered with some of good quality. Upon past
occasions, when under the direct influence of Tien, and in the hope of gaining
some money benefit, this person may have spoken of him in terms of praise, and
may even have recommended friends to entrust articles of value to him, or to
procure goods on his advice. Now, however, he records it as his unalterable
decision that the father of Tien Nung is by profession a person who obtains
goods by stratagem, and that, moreover, it is impossible to gain an advantage
over him on matters of exchange.</p>
<p>The events that have happened prove the deep wisdom of Li Pen when he exclaimed
“The whitest of pigeons, no matter how excellent in the silk-hung
chamber, is not to be followed on the field of battle.” Tien herself was
all that the most exacting of persons could demand, but her opinions on the
subject of picture-making were not formed by heavy thought, and it would have
been well if this had been borne in mind by this person. One morning he chanced
to meet her while carrying open in his hands four sets of printed leaves
containing his pictures.</p>
<p>“I have observed,” said Tien, after the usual personal inquiries
had been exchanged, “that the renowned Kin Yen, who is the object of the
keenest envy among his brother picture-makers, so little regards the sacredness
of his accomplished art that never by any chance does he depict persons of the
very highest excellence. Let not the words of an impetuous maiden disarrange
his digestive organs if they should seem too bold to the high-souled Kin Yen,
but this matter has, since she has known him, troubled the eyelids of Tien.
Here,” she continued, taking from this person’s hand one of the
printed leaves which he was carrying, “in this illustration of persons
returning from extinguishing a fire, is there one who appears to possess those
qualities which appeal to all that is intellectual and competitive within one?
Can it be that the immaculate Kin Yen is unacquainted with the subtle
distinction between the really select and the vastly ordinary? Ah,
undiscriminating Kin Yen! are not the eyelashes of the person who is addressing
you as threads of fine gold to junk’s cables when compared with those of
the extremely commonplace female who is here pictured in the art of carrying a
bucket? Can the most refined lack of vanity hide from you the fact that your
own person is infinitely rounder than this of the evilly-intentioned-looking
individual with the opium pipe? O blind Kin Yen!”</p>
<p>Here she fled in honourable confusion, leaving this person standing in the
street, astounded, and a prey to the most distinguished emotions of a
complicated nature.</p>
<p>“Oh, Tien,” he cried at length, “inspired by those bright
eyes, narrower than the most select of the three thousand and one possessed by
the sublime Buddha, the almost fallen Kin Yen will yet prove himself worthy of
your esteemed consideration. He will, without delay, learn to draw two new
living persons, and will incorporate in them the likenesses which you have
suggested.”</p>
<p>Returning swiftly to his abode, he therefore inscribed and despatched this
letter, in proof of his resolve:</p>
<p>“To the Heaven-sent human chrysanthemum, in whose body reside the
Celestial Principles and the imprisoned colours of the rainbow.</p>
<p>“From the very offensive and self-opinionated picture-maker.</p>
<p>“Henceforth this person will take no rest, nor eat any but the commonest
food, until he shall have carried out the wishes of his one Jade Star, she
whose teeth he is not worthy to blacken.</p>
<p>“When Kin Yen has been entrusted with a story which contains a being in
some degree reflecting the character of Tien, he will embellish it with her
irreproachable profile and come to hear her words. Till then he bids her
farewell.”</p>
<p>From that moment most of this person’s time was necessarily spent in
learning to draw the two new characters, and in consequence of this he lost
much work, and, indeed, the greater part of the connexion which he had been at
such pains to form gradually slipped away from him. Many months passed before
he was competent to reproduce persons resembling Tien and himself, for in this
he was unassisted by Tieng Lin, and his progress was slow.</p>
<p>At length, being satisfied, he called upon the least fierce of those who sit in
easy-chairs, and requested that he might be entrusted with a story for
picture-making.</p>
<p>“We should have been covered with honourable joy to set in operation the
brush of the inspired Kin Yen,” replied the other with agreeable
condescension; “only at the moment, it does not chance that we have
before us any stories in which funerals, or beggars being driven from the city,
form the chief incidents. Perhaps if the polished Kin Yen should happen to be
passing this ill-constructed office in about six months’
time—”</p>
<p>“The brush of Kin Yen will never again depict funerals, or labourers
arranging themselves to receive pay or similar subjects,” exclaimed this
person impetuously, “for, as it is well said, ‘The lightning
discovers objects which the paper-lantern fails to reveal.’ In future
none but tales dealing with the most distinguished persons shall have his
attention.”</p>
<p>“If this be the true word of the dignified Kin Yen, it is possible that
we may be able to animate his inspired faculties,” was the response.
“But in that case, as a new style must be in the nature of an experiment,
and as our public has come to regard Kin Yen as the great exponent of Art
Facing in One Direction, we cannot continue the exceedingly liberal payment
with which we have been accustomed to reward his elegant exertions.”</p>
<p>“Provided the story be suitable, that is a matter of less
importance,” replied this person.</p>
<p>“The story,” said the one in the easy-chair, “is by the
refined Tong-king, and it treats of the high-minded and conscientious doubts of
one who would become a priest of Fo. When preparing for this distinguished
office he discovers within himself leanings towards the religion of Lao-Tse.
His illustrious scruples are enhanced by his affection for Wu Ping, who now
appears in the story.”</p>
<p>“And the ending?” inquired this person, for it was desirable that
the two should marry happily.</p>
<p>“The inimitable stories of Tong-king never have any real ending, and this
one, being in his most elevated style, has even less end than most of them. But
the whole narrative is permeated with the odour of joss-sticks and honourable
high-mindedness, and the two characters are both of noble birth.”</p>
<p>As it might be some time before another story so suitable should be offered, or
one which would afford so good an opportunity of wafting incense to Tien, and
of displaying her incomparable outline in dignified and magnanimous attitudes,
this was eagerly accepted, and for the next week this obscure person spent all
his days and nights in picturing the lovely Tien and his debased self in the
characters of the nobly-born young priest of Fo and Wu Ping. The pictures
finished, he caused them to be carefully conveyed to the office, and then,
sitting down, spent many hours in composing the following letter, to be sent to
Tien, accompanying a copy of the printed leaves wherein the story and his
drawing should appear:</p>
<p>“When the light has for a period been hidden from a person, it is no
uncommon thing for him to be struck blind on gazing at the sun; therefore, if
the sublime Tien values the eyes of Kin Yen, let her hide herself behind a
gauze screen on his approach.</p>
<p>“The trembling words of Tien have sunk deep into the inside of Kin Yen
and become part of his being. Never again can he depict persons of the quality
and in the position he was wont to do.</p>
<p>“With this he sends his latest efforts. In each case he conceives his
drawings to be the pictures of the written words; in the noble Tien’s
case it is undoubtedly so, in his own he aspires to it. Doubtless the
unobtrusive Tien would make no claim to the character and manner of behaving of
the one in the story, yet Kin Yen confidently asserts that she is to the other
as the glove is to the hand, and he is filled with the most intelligent delight
at being able to exhibit her in her true robes, by which she will be known to
all who see her, in spite of her dignified protests. Kin Yen hopes; he will
come this evening after sunset.”</p>
<p>The week which passed between the finishing of the pictures and the appearance
of the eminent printed leaves containing them was the longest in this
near-sighted person’s ill-spent life. But at length the day arrived, and
going with exceedingly mean haste to the place of sale, he purchased a copy and
sent it, together with the letter of his honourable intention, on which he had
bestowed so much care, to Tien.</p>
<p>Not till then did it occur to this inconsiderable one that the impetuousness of
his action was ill-judged; for might it not be that the pictures were
evilly-printed, or that the delicate and fragrant words painting the character
of the one who now bore the features of Tien had undergone some change?</p>
<p>To satisfy himself, scarce as taels had become with him, he purchased another
copy.</p>
<p>There are many exalted sayings of the wise and venerable Confucious constructed
so as to be of service and consolation in moments of strong mental distress.
These for the greater part recommend tranquillity of mind, a complete
abnegation of the human passions and the like behaviour. The person who is here
endeavouring to bring this badly-constructed account of his dishonourable
career to a close pondered these for some moments after twice glancing through
the matter in the printed leaves, and then, finding the faculties of speech and
movement restored to him, procured a two-edged knife of distinguished
brilliance and went forth to call upon the one who sits in an easy-chair.</p>
<p>“Behold,” said the lesser one, insidiously stepping in between this
person an the inner door, “my intellectual and all-knowing chief is not
here to-day. May his entirely insufficient substitute offer words of
congratulation to the inspired Kin Yen on his effective and striking pictures
in this week’s issue?”</p>
<p>“His altogether insufficient substitute,” answered this person,
with difficulty mastering his great rage, “may and shall offer words of
explanation to the inspired Kin Yen, setting forth the reason of his pictures
being used, not with the high-minded story of the elegant Tong-king for which
they were executed, but accompanying exceedingly base, foolish, and
ungrammatical words written by Klan-hi, the Peking remover of
gravity—words which will evermore brand the dew-like Tien as a person of
light speech and no refinement”; and in his agony this person struck the
lacquered table several times with his elegant knife.</p>
<p>“O Kin Yen,” exclaimed the lesser one, “this matter rests not
here. It is a thing beyond the sphere of the individual who is addressing you.
All he can tell is that the graceful Tong-king withdrew his exceedingly tedious
story for some reason at the final moment, and as your eminent drawings had
been paid for, my chief of the inner office decided to use them with this story
of Klan-hi. But surely it cannot be that there is aught in the story to
displease your illustrious personality?”</p>
<p>“Judge for yourself,” this person said, “first understanding
that the two immaculate characters figuring as the personages of the narrative
are exact copies of this dishonoured person himself and of the willowy Tien,
daughter of the vastly rich Pe-li-Chen, whom he was hopeful of marrying.”</p>
<p>Selecting one of the least offensive of the passages in the work, this unhappy
person read the following immature and inelegant words:</p>
<p>“This well-satisfied writer of printed leaves had a highly-distinguished
time last night. After Chow had departed to see about food, and the junk had
been fastened up at the lock of Kilung, on the Yang-tse-Kiang, he and the
round-bodied Shang were journeying along the narrow path by the river-side when
the right leg of the graceful and popular person who is narrating these events
disappeared into the river. Suffering no apprehension in the dark, but that the
vanishing limb was the left leg of Shang, this intelligent writer allowed his
impassiveness to melt away to an exaggerated degree; but at that moment the
circumstance became plain to the round-bodied Shang, who was in consequence
very grossly amused at the mishap and misapprehension of your good lord, the
writer, at the same time pointing out the matter as it really was. Then it
chanced that there came by one of the maidens who carry tea and jest for small
sums of money to the sitters at the little tables with round white tops, at
which this remarkable person, the confidant of many mandarins, ever desirous of
displaying his priceless power of removing gravity, said to her:</p>
<p>“‘How much of gladness, Ning-Ning? By the Sacred Serpent this is
plainly your night out.’</p>
<p>“Perceiving the true facts of the predicament of this commendable writer,
she replied:</p>
<p>“‘Suffer not your illustrious pigtail to be removed, venerable
Wang; for in this maiden’s estimation it is indeed your night in.’</p>
<p>“There are times when this valued person wonders whether his method of
removing gravity be in reality very antique or quite new. On such occasions the
world, with all its schools, and those who interfere in the concerns of others,
continues to revolve around him. The wondrous sky-lanterns come out silently
two by two like to the crystallized music of stringed woods. Then, in the
mystery of no-noise, his head becomes greatly enlarged with celestial and
highly-profound thoughts; his groping hand seems to touch matter which may be
written out in his impressive style and sold to those who print leaves, and he
goes home to write out such.”</p>
<p>When this person looked up after reading, with tears of shame in his eyes, he
perceived that the lesser one had cautiously disappeared. Therefore, being
unable to gain admittance to the inner office, he returned to his home.</p>
<p>Here the remark of the omniscient Tai Loo again fixes itself upon the
attention. No sooner had this incapable person reached his house than he became
aware that a parcel had arrived for him from the still adorable Tien. Retiring
to a distance from it, he opened the accompanying letter and read:</p>
<p>“When a virtuous maiden has been made the victim of a heartless jest or a
piece of coarse stupidity at a person’s hands, it is no uncommon thing
for him to be struck blind on meeting her father. Therefore, if the degraded
and evil-minded Kin Yen values his eyes, ears, nose, pigtail, even his
dishonourable breath, let him hide himself behind a fortified wall at
Pe-li-Chen’s approach.</p>
<p>“With this Tien returns everything she has ever accepted from Kin Yen.
She even includes the brace of puppies which she received anonymously about a
month ago, and which she did not eat, but kept for reasons of her
own—reasons entirely unconnected with the vapid and exceedingly conceited
Kin Yen.”</p>
<p>As though this letter, and the puppies of which this person now heard for the
first time, making him aware of the existence of a rival lover, were not
enough, there almost immediately arrived a letter from Tien’s father:</p>
<p>“This person has taken the advice of those skilled in extorting money by
means of law forms, and he finds that Kin Yen has been guilty of a grave and
highly expensive act. This is increased by the fact that Tien had conveyed his
seemingly distinguished intentions to all her friends, before whom she now
stands in an exceedingly ungraceful attitude. The machinery for depriving Kin
Yen of all the necessaries of existence shall be put into operation at
once.”</p>
<p>At this point, the person who is now concluding his obscure and commonplace
history, having spent his last piece of money on joss-sticks and incense-paper,
and being convinced of the presence of the spirits of his ancestors, is
inspired to make the following prophecies: That Tieng Lin, who imposed upon him
in the matter of picture-making, shall come to a sudden end, accompanied by
great internal pains, after suffering extreme poverty; that the one who sits in
an easy-chair, together with his lesser one and all who make stories for them,
shall, while sailing to a rice feast during the Festival of Flowers, be
precipitated into the water and slowly devoured by sea monsters, Klan-hi in
particular being tortured in the process; that Pel-li-Chen, the father of Tien,
shall be seized with the dancing sickness when in the presence of the august
Emperor, and being in consequence suspected of treachery, shall, to prove the
truth of his denials, be submitted to the tests of boiling tar, red-hot swords,
and of being dropped from a great height on to the Sacred Stone of Goodness and
Badness, in each of which he shall fail to convince his judges or to establish
his innocence, to the amusement of all beholders.</p>
<p>These are the true words of Kin Yen, the picture-maker, who, having unweighed
his mind and exposed the avaricious villainy of certain persons, is now
retiring by night to a very select and hidden spot in the Khingan Mountains.</p>
<SPAN name="endofbook"></SPAN>
<div style="break-after:column;"></div><br />